Selected quad for the lemma: soul_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
soul_n affection_n understanding_n will_n 4,333 5 5.6834 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A49846 A search after souls and spiritual operations in man Layton, Henry, 1622-1705. 1700 (1700) Wing L759; ESTC R39121 317,350 468

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n viz._n that_o at_o the_o resurrection_n the_o whole_a may_v be_v save_v spirit_n put_v for_o the_o whole_a man._n chap._n 7.34_o the_o unmarried_a woman_n be_v holy_a in_o body_n and_o spirit_n viz._n soul_n and_o body_n together_o holy_a in_o the_o whole_a compositum_fw-la ezek._n 11.19_o i_o will_v give_v they_o one_o heart_n and_o put_v a_o new_a spirit_n and_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n within_o you_o chap._n 13.3_o wo_n to_o the_o prophet_n that_o follow_v their_o own_o spirit_n and_o have_v see_v nothing_o ver._n 17._o they_o prophesy_v out_o of_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v spirit_n put_v for_o the_o person_n the_o heart_n the_o affection_n the_o passion_n for_o mind_n understanding_n knowledge_n reason_n conscience_n viz._n for_o man_n and_o every_o of_o his_o sublime_a and_o spiritual_a part_n or_o faculty_n but_o most_o proper_o and_o especial_o for_o his_o breath_n as_o job_n 12.10_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o every_o live_a thing_n and_o the_o breath_n of_o all_o mankind_n ch._n 34.14_o if_o god_n set_v his_o heart_n upon_o man_n if_o he_o gather_v unto_o himself_o his_o spirit_n and_o his_o breath_n all_o flesh_n shall_v perish_v together_o and_o man_n shall_v turn_v again_o to_o his_o dust_n psal_n 104.29_o when_o thou_o take_v away_o their_o breath_n they_o die_v and_o be_v turn_v again_o to_o their_o dust_n when_o thou_o let_v thy_o breath_n go_v forth_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v and_o thou_o shall_v renew_v the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n gen._n 2.7_o by_o god_n breathe_v into_o man_n nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n man_n become_v a_o live_v soul_n rom._n 14.7_o none_o of_o we_o live_v to_o himself_o and_o no_o man_n die_v to_o himself_o but_o we_o live_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o die_v to_o the_o lord_n whether_o therefore_o we_o live_v or_o die_v we_o be_v the_o lord_n hence_o it_o need_v not_o seem_v strange_a that_o a_o die_a man_n shall_v recommend_v his_o person_n to_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o term_n of_o his_o spirit_n for_o the_o body_n as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v under_o the_o knowledge_n and_o provision_n of_o providence_n when_o good_a man_n lie_v down_o to_o sleep_v they_o customary_o recommend_v themselves_o to_o god_n and_o go_v to_o sleep_v in_o death_n make_v such_o a_o recommendation_n both_o the_o more_o earnest_a and_o the_o more_o solemn_a and_o can_v reasonable_o be_v intend_v of_o the_o spirit_n only_o but_o of_o the_o whole_a compositum_fw-la by_o that_o term_n and_o god_n will_v raise_v they_o both_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n john_n 6.44_o the_o man_n that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n the_o whole_a man_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n psal_n 31.6_o into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n thou_o have_v redeem_v i_o o_o lord_n god_n of_o truth_n david_n speak_v this_o when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o way_n of_o live_v and_o have_v both_o a_o body_n and_o a_o soul_n and_o apparent_o seek_v god_n protection_n for_o they_o both_o viz._n for_o his_o person_n under_o this_o term_n of_o spirit_n jo._n 11.25_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v viz._n the_o compositum_fw-la of_o soul_n and_o body_n our_o lord_n know_v he_o shall_v have_v a_o speedy_a resurrection_n and_o foretell_v it_o to_o be_v within_o three_o day_n time_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o by_o this_o term_n of_o spirit_n he_o recommend_v they_o both_o to_o the_o protection_n of_o his_o father_n and_o that_o s._n stephen_n do_v the_o like_a to_o our_o lord_n whence_o here_o appear_v no_o necessity_n of_o infer_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n from_o these_o text_n which_o plain_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n and_o it_o seeem_v may_v be_v very_o well_o satisfy_v by_o another_o very_a different_a construction_n of_o they_o joh._n 6.40_o it_o be_v god_n will_n that_o he_o who_o believe_v shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n soul_n and_o body_n without_o mention_n of_o a_o intermediate_v estate_n and_o we_o do_v not_o accept_v our_o two_o quote_v text_n as_o a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o that_o point_n act_n 2.27_o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n for_o death_n be_v construe_v to_o comprehend_v the_o body_n also_o and_o both_o be_v raise_v according_o rom._n 2.9_o tribulation_n and_o anguish_n upon_o every_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o do_v evil_a this_o comprehend_v the_o body_n also_o so_o chap._n 13.1_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n whence_o we_o conclude_v that_o by_o recommend_v the_o die_a spirit_n intend_v the_o die_a body_n also_o and_o be_v intend_v of_o the_o whole_a man_n or_o the_o person_n then_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n 2_o cor._n 5.1_o if_o our_o earthly_a house_n of_o this_o tabernacle_n be_v dissolve_v we_o have_v a_o building_n of_o god_n a_o house_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n eternal_a in_o the_o heaven_n and_o desire_v to_o be_v clothe_v upon_o with_o that_o house_n groan_v to_o be_v clothe_v upon_o that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n yet_o will_v not_o be_v unclothe_v whilst_o we_o be_v at_o home_n in_o the_o body_n we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n walk_v by_o faith_n not_o by_o sight_n we_o desire_v to_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o present_a with_o the_o lord_n for_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o thing_n do_v in_o his_o body_n according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v do_v whether_o good_a or_o bad_a we_o read_v rev._n 22.12_o i_o come_v quick_o and_o my_o reward_n be_v with_o i_o to_o give_v every_o man_n according_a as_o his_o work_n shall_v be_v ver._n 20._o sure_o i_o come_v quick_o amen_o even_o so_o come_v lord_n jesus_n heb._n 10.37_o yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v will_v come_v and_o will_v not_o tarry_v ver._n 35._o &_o 36._o we_o must_v wait_v with_o patience_n and_o confidence_n till_o the_o time_n promise_v do_v come_v james_n 5.8_o be_v you_o also_o patient_a establish_v your_o heart_n for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n draw_v nigh_o 1_o pet._n 1.5_o who_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n as_o if_o the_o last_o time_n be_v near_o chap._n 4.5_o man_n shall_v give_v a_o account_n to_o he_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a viz._n in_o a_o short_a time_n come_v 2_o pet._n 3.12_o look_v for_o and_o haste_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n to_o judgement_n 1_o joh._n 2.28_o abide_v in_o christ_n that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v you_o may_v have_v confidence_n and_o not_o be_v ashamed_a at_o his_o come_n as_o if_o he_o be_v expect_v to_o come_v in_o their_o time_n so_o 1_o tim._n 6.14_o keep_v this_o commandment_n without_o spot_n until_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o if_o timothy_n may_v live_v to_o that_o time_n and_o elsewhere_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n draw_v nigh_o 1_o joh._n 2.18_o little_a child_n it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n and_o the_o time_n be_v short_a he_o that_o be_v holy_a let_v he_o be_v holy_a rev._n 22.11_o and_o he_o which_o be_v filthy_a let_v he_o be_v filthy_a still_o as_o if_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n be_v even_o then_o at_o hand_n 2_o pet._n 3.9_o man_n than_o say_v that_o day_n be_v slack_a in_o its_o come_n and_o ver._n 4._o that_o the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n be_v overlong_a delay_v from_o all_o these_o evidence_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n do_v believe_v the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o judgement_n to_o be_v nigh_o at_o hand_n and_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o and_o that_o then_o as_o philip._n 3.21_o our_o vile_a body_n shall_v be_v change_v and_o fashion_v like_o his_o glorious_a body_n 1_o cor._n 15.51_o we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v and_o to_o this_o change_n it_o seem_v s._n paul_n word_n in_o our_o prove_v text_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v he_o will_v not_o be_v unclothe_v but_o clothe_v upon_o with_o the_o house_n which_o be_v from_o heaven_n that_o so_o he_o may_v not_o be_v find_v naked_a but_o that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o in_o life_n whilst_o we_o be_v at_o home_n in_o the_o body_n viz._n our_o natural_a body_n we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n
in_o the_o law_n and_o have_v a_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o be_v a_o law_n to_o themselves_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o i_o quote_v as_o a_o parallel_a text_n 1_o cor._n 11.14_o do_v not_o even_a nature_n itself_o teach_v you_o that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v long_a hair_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o he_o i_o say_v this_o text_n seem_v to_o expound_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o nature_n in_o the_o former_a text_n viz._n that_o second_o nature_n arise_v from_o education_n and_o the_o general_a custom_n practise_v and_o observe_v among_o men._n in_o all_o the_o country_n of_o st._n paul_n progress_n and_o travel_n man_n use_v to_o wear_v their_o hair_n short_a and_o thence_o it_o look_v to_o he_o like_o a_o unnatural_a thing_n to_o do_v otherwise_o and_o yet_o at_o that_o time_n both_o in_o germany_n france_n and_o england_n those_o nation_n have_v a_o general_a custom_n for_o man_n to_o wear_v their_o hair_n at_o as_o full_a a_o length_n as_o the_o woman_n especial_o those_o who_o be_v of_o a_o superior_a quality_n among_o they_o hence_o i_o will_v infer_v st._n paul_n nature_n by_o which_o man_n do_v the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n intend_v a_o nature_n cultivate_v by_o education_n act_v though_o not_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o moses_n law_n not_o know_v to_o they_o yet_o by_o other_o rule_n parallel_v and_o equivalent_a and_o according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o their_o several_a education_n and_o such_o rule_n as_o happen_v to_o be_v teach_v they_o and_o they_o believe_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o obey_v man_n so_o educate_v and_o inform_v act_v by_o force_n of_o such_o their_o second_o nature_n according_a to_o their_o accept_a rule_n and_o custom_n the_o moral_a duty_n positive_o express_v in_o and_o command_v by_o the_o law_n deliver_v by_o angel_n unto_o moses_n capacity_n of_o humane_a nature_n can_v and_o do_v attain_v to_o such_o perfection_n by_o rule_n education_n and_o custom_n as_o lead_v they_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o action_n which_o moses_n command_v as_o man_n by_o custom_n and_o education_n be_v teach_v to_o manage_v army_n and_o treaty_n to_o argue_v and_o infer_v to_o dance_v sing_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o and_o infinite_a other_o thought_n and_o thing_n do_v very_o fat_a exceed_v the_o power_n and_o practice_n of_o a_o humane_a nature_n in_o its_o naked_a simplicity_n as_o of_o one_o bear_v or_o expose_v in_o a_o wilderness_n or_o desert_n without_o education_n or_o company_n of_o any_o but_o the_o beast_n the_o best_a among_o the_o heathen_n do_v as_o you_o say_v conquer_v vice_n assist_v and_o direct_v by_o good_a rule_n education_n imitation_n and_o practice_n but_o never_o by_o power_n of_o nature_n uncultivated_a naked_a and_o simple_a as_o in_o some_o man_n it_o may_v have_v be_v find_v you_o say_v such_o heathen_n govern_v their_o inclination_n by_o the_o prevalency_n of_o their_o reason_n above_o or_o over_o their_o sensual_a desire_n and_o i_o grant_v that_o assist_v by_o rule_n education_n and_o example_n of_o other_o who_o instruct_v they_o their_o reason_n do_v prevail_v to_o rectify_v or_o control_v the_o common_a inordinate_a and_o irregular_a desire_n of_o their_o appetite_n and_o passion_n you_o tell_v i_o before_o one_o swallow_n make_v not_o a_o summer_n and_o i_o say_v now_o of_o these_o heathen_n apparent_a rari_fw-la nante_n in_fw-la gurgite_fw-la vasto_fw-la a_o exceed_a small_a number_n of_o they_o if_o compare_v with_o the_o vast_a multitude_n of_o those_o who_o act_v otherwise_o they_o be_v man_n compose_v ex_fw-la meliori_fw-la luto_fw-la fact●_n ex_fw-la ligno_fw-la quo_fw-la sit_fw-la mercurius_n assist_v and_o elevate_v by_o a_o happy_a education_n good_a rule_n commendable_a example_n which_o themselves_o improve_v by_o consideration_n and_o study_n and_o make_v they_o habitual_a to_o themselves_o by_o practice_n i_o say_v that_o such_o a_o conduct_n be_v no_o more_o natural_a to_o humanity_n than_o it_o be_v to_o speak_v read_z write_v build_v fort_n play_v upon_o the_o lute_n or_o any_o such_o like_a practice_n there_o be_v capacity_n in_o humane_a nature_n able_a to_o attain_v to_o all_o these_o and_o very_o many_o other_o act_n and_o practice_n but_o not_o without_o the_o assistance_n of_o education_n rule_n example_n labour_n exercise_n and_o practice_n so_o by_o nature_n thus_o cultivate_v these_o high_a heathen_n act_v to_o great_a degree_n of_o goodness_n and_o become_v a_o law_n to_o themselves_o not_o from_o simple_o natural_a inclination_n or_o the_o notice_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n in_o its_o naked_a natural_n or_o any_o power_n grow_v out_o of_o it_o as_o from_o a_o proper_a internal_a original_a like_a to_o those_o of_o the_o sense_n appetite_n affection_n passion_n the_o understanding_n invention_n memory_n judgement_n will_n for_o these_o proceed_v from_o internal_a and_o natural_a original_n viz._n the_o contexture_n of_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o man_n and_o act_n of_o themselves_o in_o that_o compositum_fw-la without_o need_v to_o be_v teach_v or_o learn_v and_o they_o form_v the_o capacity_n of_o man_n learning_n ready_a and_o fit_a for_o all_o man_n performance_n apt_a to_o be_v advance_v direct_v and_o perfect_v by_o education_n rule_n and_o example_n and_o make_v so_o easy_a as_o to_o appear_v in_o some_o measure_n natural_a by_o the_o custom_n and_o practice_n of_o they_o as_o we_o may_v perceive_v in_o a_o practise_a lutinist_n who_o play_v with_o such_o apparent_a ease_n and_o readiness_n as_o if_o that_o faculty_n be_v natural_a to_o he_o and_o have_v come_v of_o itself_o upon_o he_o and_o thus_o the_o good_a deportment_n of_o heathen_n become_v and_o may_v be_v esteem_v and_o speak_v of_o as_o natural_a to_o they_o not_z simpliciter_fw-la sed_fw-la secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la mediantibus_fw-la the_o education_n rule_n imitation_n practice_n and_o custom_n and_o from_o this_o acquire_v nature_n in_o man_n it_o seem_v his_o conscience_n discern_v the_o sinfulness_n of_o homicide_n adultery_n theft_n and_o covetousness_n be_v derive_v and_o not_o from_o a_o internal_a or_o mere_a natural_a principle_n or_o as_o a_o effluvium_fw-la emanant_fw-la from_o his_o immortal_a or_o immaterial_a soul_n paragraph_n 4._o you_o tell_v i_o that_o in_o consider_v the_o great_a and_o general_o prevalent_a power_n of_o sensuality_n in_o man_n i_o ought_v to_o take_v in_o the_o struggle_v of_o reason_n against_o it_o and_o i_o agree_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o do_v so_o and_o say_v that_o i_o have_v do_v so_o in_o all_o my_o disquisition_n concern_v that_o matter_n i_o have_v say_v that_o in_o contest_v between_o sensuality_n and_o reason_n they_o both_o plead_v before_o the_o judgement_n argue_v each_o according_a to_o their_o several_a conception_n the_o one_o side_n for_o a_o present_a and_o certain_a pleasure_n or_o satisfaction_n the_o other_o for_o a_o future_a or_o more_o remote_a and_o less_o certain_a good_a to_o be_v obtain_v or_o suffer_v to_o be_v avoid_v according_a as_o man_n have_v be_v teach_v by_o their_o education_n the_o rule_n and_o example_n of_o other_o their_z own_o experience_n or_o such_o conception_n as_o they_o have_v submit_v themselves_o unto_o i_o have_v say_v that_o a_o intelligent_a soul_n in_o man_n whereby_o he_o live_v and_o be_v goern_v shall_v probable_o be_v able_a to_o compel_v the_o obedience_n of_o the_o sensual_a faculty_n you_o boggle_v at_o the_o word_n compel_v and_o change_v it_o into_o effectual_o persuade_v and_o i_o be_o content_a to_o agree_v to_o your_o word_v of_o it_o but_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o the_o rational_a soul_n or_o faculty_n be_v not_o able_a effectual_o to_o persuade_v the_o sensitive_a faculty_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o direction_n of_o reason_n or_o piety_n but_o in_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o for_o one_o or_o more_o likely_a a_o thousand_o for_o one_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o rational_a soul_n or_o faculty_n instead_o of_o prevail_v over_o sensual_a inclination_n and_o force_n it_o be_v by_o they_o overbear_v and_o baffle_v to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o be_v hurry_v with_o they_o into_o a_o greedy_a accomplishment_n of_o such_o desire_v as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o dictate_v of_o such_o soul_n or_o rational_a faculty_n even_o when_o strengthen_v with_o all_o its_o assistance_n of_o education_n rule_n good_a example_n exhortation_n and_o conscience_n to_o this_o you_o answer_v that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o sense_n against_o the_o rational_a soul_n grow_v not_o from_o humane_a nature_n but_o from_o the_o depravation_n of_o it_o occasion_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o the_o curse_n thereupon_o ensue_a this_o depravation_n you_o say_v do_v very_o much_o incline_v man_n to_o follow_v the_o violent_a bend_v of_o their_o sensitive_a appetite_n and_o passion_n against_o the_o struggle_v of_o reason_n the_o effect_n of_o grace_n which_o though_o sufficient_a may_v for_o want_n of_o be_v attend_v unto_o
soul_n can_v be_v defile_v but_o by_o its_o come_n from_o adam_n pag._n 43._o say_v his_o sort_n of_o soul_n be_v a_o true_a be_v and_o not_o only_o a_o conceit_n or_o fancy_n it_o seem_v he_o suspect_v it_o look_v somewhat_o like_o a_o fancy_n and_o i_o be_o very_o apt_a to_o pass_v it_o for_o one_o notwithstanding_o his_o word_n to_o the_o contrary_n he_o say_v my_o soul_n can_v and_o will_v subsist_v and_o remain_v what_o it_o be_v when_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n but_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v he_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o my_o body_n but_o my_o soul_n which_o make_v i_o a_o man._n i_o say_v neither_o of_o they_o make_v a_o man_n but_o they_o must_v be_v both_o together_o for_o that_o purpose_n pag._n 44._o say_v let_v a_o apoplexy_n hinder_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o my_o brain_n and_o all_o my_o organ_n become_v useless_a i_o agree_v this_o and_o say_v the_o soul_n therefore_o do_v not_o act_n or_o understand_v but_o by_o the_o organ_n can_v do_v so_o without_o they_o what_o man_n by_o his_o rational_a faculty_n can_v perform_v he_o say_v be_v do_v by_o his_o soul_n and_o i_o grant_v it_o but_o not_o without_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o head_n and_o especial_o the_o brain_n and_o so_o for_o the_o sensitive_a and_o vital_a faculty_n and_o their_o organ_n pag._n 45._o grant_v here_o the_o understanding_n to_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o will_n which_o choose_v or_o refuse_v as_o the_o other_o direct_v he_o say_v my_o affection_n be_v the_o strong_a and_o sensible_a motion_n of_o my_o soul_n i_o grant_v it_o so_o in_o the_o praecordia_fw-la as_o the_o rational_a be_v in_o the_o head_n but_o in_o no_o other_o part_n save_v the_o praecordia_fw-la be_v there_o any_o affection_n and_o there_o they_o be_v as_o proper_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o organ_n as_o of_o the_o soul_n they_o must_v both_o operate_v to_o the_o production_n of_o such_o effect_n he_o say_v he_o find_v his_o soul_n can_v never_o rise_v out_o of_o matter_n nor_o come_v into_o his_o body_n by_o natural_a generation_n i_o will_v not_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o know_v what_o he_o may_v find_v of_o himself_o or_o say_v of_o himself_o but_o i_o find_v no_o such_o thing_n of_o myself_o nor_o have_v he_o yet_o enough_o direct_v other_o man_n to_o find_v what_o he_o say_v he_o find_v unless_o they_o will_v first_o accept_v of_o his_o fancy_n viz._n that_o a_o man_n have_v within_o he_o a_o small_a spark_n of_o a_o spirit_n come_v he_o know_v not_o how_o nor_o from_o whence_o reside_v and_o govern_v he_o know_v not_o how_o nor_o where_o and_o depart_v from_o he_o he_o know_v not_o how_o nor_o whither_o and_o how_o to_o know_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n there_o be_v in_o a_o man_n neither_o have_v he_o show_v nor_o can_v man_n reason_n find_v out_o so_o as_o most_o likely_a all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o fancy_n he_o say_v brute_n be_v destitute_a of_o understanding_n reason_n and_o conscience_n etc._n etc._n i_o say_v they_o have_v these_o faculty_n in_o a_o very_a low_a degree_n as_o we_o may_v know_v and_o love_n god_n in_o a_o very_a much_o low_a degree_n than_o the_o angel_n pag._n 46._o say_v he_o be_v make_v for_o noble_a end_n and_o use_n than_o to_o eat_v drink_v sleep_n talk_z and_o die_v and_o i_o grant_v it_o and_o that_o ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la momento_n pendet_fw-la eternitas_fw-la at_o the_o resurrection_n a_o account_n must_v be_v give_v and_o then_o recompense_n shall_v be_v distribute_v 2_o tim._n 4.8_o henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o all_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v all_o man_n shall_v then_o receive_v accord_v to_o their_o work_n and_o behaviour_n use_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o this_o be_v as_o true_a and_o provable_a as_o that_o christ_n jesus_n come_v to_o save_v sinner_n or_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o as_o one_o who_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n can_v have_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o certainty_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o our_o author_n in_o all_o this_o prove_a discourse_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o it_o and_o the_o likely_a reason_n of_o that_o be_v the_o contrariety_n which_o appear_v betwixt_o the_o two_o doctrine_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v go_v immediate_o to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n and_o that_o of_o the_o resurrection_n we_o both_o agree_v that_o sense_n and_o perception_n be_v act_v by_o the_o soul_n he_o say_v by_o its_o own_o efficacy_n i_o say_v by_o assistance_n of_o bodily_a organ_n and_o not_o without_o they_o whence_o his_o soul_n in_o hell_n need_v no_o addition_n of_o body_n or_o organ_n to_o make_v it_o more_o sensible_a than_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v but_o i_o must_v have_v a_o body_n and_o organ_n or_o it_o can_v neither_o do_v nor_o suffer_v any_o thing_n thus_o a_o resurrection_n for_o i_o be_v necessary_a in_o respect_n to_o future_a recompense_n not_o so_o for_o he_o consider_v we_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n in_o heaven_n what_o advantage_n can_v it_o expect_v from_o a_o resurrection_n it_o have_v already_o the_o roal_n mansion_n of_o heaven_n the_o society_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o god_n and_o what_o can_v any_o creature_n or_o be_v desire_n more_o well_o but_o if_o thing_n go_v on_o to_o a_o resurrection_n the_o case_n must_v be_v alter_v and_o for_o the_o worse_o as_o it_o seem_v for_o these_o soul_n must_v go_v down_o again_o from_o those_o glorious_a mansion_n and_o enter_v of_o new_a into_o its_o old_a body_n and_o return_v no_o more_o to_o heaven_n but_o live_v upon_o earth_n again_o it_o be_v true_a it_o shall_v be_v a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n in_o a_o more_o happy_a and_o bless_a state_n than_o now_o it_o be_v or_o than_o we_o at_o present_a enjoy_v but_o far_o short_a of_o god_n royal_a mansion_n in_o heaven_n the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n of_o which_o he_o have_v say_v heaven_n be_v my_o throne_n in_o comparison_n of_o which_o the_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o footstool_n 2_o pet._n 3.13_o 14._o we_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n look_v for_o new_a heaven_n or_o sky_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n and_o see_v that_o you_o look_v for_o such_o thing_n be_v diligent_a that_o you_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a do_v so_o that_o you_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o these_o reward_n revel_v 21.1_o 2._o i_o see_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n and_o a_o new_a jerusalem_n come_v down_o from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n upon_o that_o new_a earth_n verse_n 11._o he_o begin_v to_o describe_v this_o glorious_a city_n by_o metaphor_n of_o gold_n precious_a stone_n pearl_n etc._n etc._n intend_v the_o happy_a state_n and_o resplendent_a virtue_n which_o the_o new_a raise_v people_n shall_v enjoy_v after_o our_o expect_a resurrection_n there_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o death_n sorrow_n pain_n or_o cry_v god_n shall_v be_v with_o they_o as_o with_o our_o first_o parent_n in_o paradise_n and_o dry_v up_o all_o their_o tear_n but_o when_o all_o this_o be_v do_v and_o consider_v what_o comparison_n can_v we_o make_v betwixt_o this_o new_a earth_n and_o that_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o royal_a throne_n of_o god_n and_o where_o he_o be_v superlative_o present_a sic_fw-la paruis_fw-la componere_fw-la magna_fw-la solemus_fw-la we_o must_v say_v the_o one_o state_n and_o place_n be_v extraordinary_a happy_a but_o the_o other_o transcend_v man_n conceit_n and_o be_v superexcellent_a to_o all_o imagination_n i_o say_v then_o a_o soul_n once_o receive_v into_o the_o high_a heaven_n if_o it_o can_v be_v capable_a of_o a_o mansion_n there_o come_v at_o the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v put_v into_o its_o body_n again_o and_o make_v a_o inhabitant_n of_o a_o new_a earth_n must_v be_v apparent_o a_o loser_n by_o that_o change_n and_o natural_o or_o rational_o such_o a_o resurrection_n can_v be_v grateful_a to_o it_o or_o desire_v by_o it_o but_o must_v be_v compel_v and_o go_v on_o invita_fw-la minerva_fw-la which_o be_v not_o the_o state_n or_o case_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o that_o be_v give_v to_o man_n as_o the_o great_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n which_o his_o servant_n receive_v of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o most_o grievous_a punishment_n of_o offender_n it_o be_v purchase_v by_o christ_n for_o his_o servant_n 1_o cor._n 15.13_o 14._o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a then_o be_v christ_n not_o rise_v and_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v then_o be_v our_o preach_a vain_a and_o your_o faith_n be_v also_o vain_a
it_o hence_o we_o may_v perceive_v that_o our_o author_n instead_o of_o prove_v by_o reason_n or_o from_o nature_n that_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v a_o immaterial_a self-subsisting_a spirit_n be_v turn_v about_o to_o vain_a jangle_n and_o with_o a_o wilful_a blindness_n such_o as_o will_v not_o see_v he_o balk_v the_o know_v and_o ancient_a opinion_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n of_o the_o church_n before_o cite_v by_o himself_o viz._n that_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v a_o material_a spirit_n kindle_v by_o our_o creator_n in_o the_o body_n of_o man_n when_o he_o breathe_v into_o adam_n be_v nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o thereby_o make_v he_o a_o live_v soul_n we_o read_v that_o when_o prometheus_n have_v frame_v and_o make_v a_o perfect_a humane_a body_n he_o can_v not_o enliven_v it_o for_o want_n of_o heavenly_a fire_n which_o he_o therefore_o steal_v from_o jupiter_n and_o be_v condemn_v to_o have_v his_o heart_n eternal_o tear_v and_o devour_v by_o the_o incessant_a gripe_n and_o endless_a voracity_n of_o a_o vulture_n or_o raven_n whether_o this_o shadow_n to_o we_o lucifer_n offence_n in_o such_o attempt_n we_o dispute_v not_o but_o apparent_a it_o be_v that_o this_o be_v the_o adequate_a emblem_n of_o a_o guilty_a and_o torment_a conscience_n for_o a_o crime_n of_o the_o high_a nature_n and_o provocation_n that_o possible_o can_v be_v commit_v ezek._n 37._o we_o meet_v with_o a_o adumbration_n of_o such_o a_o enliven_a breath_n god_n direct_v his_o word_n say_v to_o the_o wind_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n come_v from_o the_o four_o wind_n o_o breath_n and_o breath_n upon_o these_o slay_a that_o they_o may_v live_v and_o the_o body_n arise_v and_o they_o live_v according_o 1_o cor._n 15.44_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a body_n and_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n the_o first_o man_n adam_n be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n and_o the_o last_o adam_n a_o quicken_a spirit_n for_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o term_n live_v soul_n parallel_a expression_n of_o scripture_n shall_v be_v cite_v to_o that_o intent_n gen._n 7.22_o all_o in_o who_o nostril_n be_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n upon_o the_o dry_a land_n die_v in_o the_o flood_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n soul_n levit._n 17.11_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o holy_a convocation_n and_o you_o shall_v afflict_v your_o soul_n viz._n yourselves_o 1_o sam._n 10._o hannah_n be_v in_o bitterness_n of_o soul_n and_o pray_v and_o weep_v she_o be_v sore_o afflict_v ch._n 2.16_o take_v as_o much_o as_o thy_o soul_n desire_v viz._n as_o much_o as_o you_o will_n ch._n 18.1_o the_o soul_n of_o jonathan_n be_v knit_v with_o the_o soul_n of_o david_n and_o he_o love_v he_o as_o his_o own_o soul_n viz._n his_o affection_n be_v knit_v to_o he_o and_o he_o love_v he_o as_o himself_o ch._n 25.29_o a_o man_n be_v rise_v to_o pursue_v thou_o and_o to_o seek_v thy_o soul_n viz._n pursue_v thy_o person_n and_o seek_v thy_o life_n ch._n 30.12_o when_o the_o egyptian_a take_v at_o ziklag_n have_v eat_v his_o spirit_n come_v again_o to_o he_o viz._n his_o vital_a spirit_n 2_o sam._n 30.39_o the_o soul_n of_o david_n long_v to_o go_v forth_o unto_o absalon_n next_o verse_n david_n be_v heart_n be_v towards_o absalon_n seem_v the_o heart_n affection_n life_n person_n use_v to_o be_v express_v by_o the_o term_n soul_n job_n 12.10_o in_o god_n hand_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o every_o live_a thing_n and_o the_o breath_n of_o all_o mankind_n ch._n 16.4_o if_o your_o soul_n be_v in_o my_o soul_n stead_n viz._n if_o you_o be_v in_o my_o case_n ch._n 21.4_o why_o shall_v not_o my_o spirit_n be_v trouble_v viz._n why_o shall_v i_o not_o be_v grieve_v ch._n 30.15_o terror_n pursue_v my_o soul_n viz._n i_o and_o my_o soul_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o i_o viz._n i_o be_o exceed_o afflict_v ch._n 33.30_o to_o bring_v back_o his_o soul_n from_o the_o pit_n to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o live_n viz._n save_v his_o life_n ch._n 34.14_o if_o god_n gather_v to_o himself_o man_n spirit_n and_o his_o breath_n he_o shall_v turn_v to_o his_o dust._n we_o have_v proceed_v thus_o far_o of_o the_o bible_n to_o collect_v text_n to_o our_o intent_n and_o shall_v we_o go_v through_o the_o psalm_n and_o forward_a it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o recite_v the_o collection_n and_o it_o seem_v the_o text_n cite_v be_v enough_o to_o establish_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o expression_n man_n become_v a_o live_a creature_n or_o person_n and_o thus_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n derive_v from_o heaven_n be_v the_o flammula_fw-la vitalis_n the_o promethean_a fire_n enkindle_v in_o the_o blood_n spirit_n and_o part_n of_o man_n body_n and_o by_o breath_n it_o have_v ever_o since_o be_v refresh_v and_o maintain_v and_o when_o god_n take_v this_o from_o we_o we_o die_v and_o be_v turn_v to_o our_o earth_n and_o all_o our_o thought_n perish_v our_o fancy_n intellect_n and_o memory_n our_o learning_n and_o ability_n as_o well_o as_o our_o love_n and_o our_o hatred_n our_o passion_n and_o affection_n the_o vital_a flame_n kindle_v in_o the_o first_o man_n pass_v intermix_v with_o the_o seminal_a substance_n and_o prolific_a virtue_n and_o receive_v in_o habitacle_n fit_v and_o proper_a for_o its_o fomentation_n and_o nutriment_n be_v first_o ferment_v by_o the_o prolific_a energy_n or_o internal_a principle_n of_o inclination_n to_o be_v coagulate_v and_o knit_v one_o part_n of_o it_o to_o the_o other_o and_o by_o fomentation_n be_v strengthen_v whence_o arise_v a_o power_n of_o assimilate_v to_o itself_o such_o nourishment_n as_o come_v within_o the_o narrow_a sphere_n of_o its_o activity_n which_o be_v by_o its_o own_o tendency_n to_o heat_n and_o the_o natural_a warmth_n and_o fomentation_n of_o its_o receptacle_n compact_v to_o and_o settle_v in_o a_o terminate_v consistency_n and_o somewhat_o a_o fix_a unity_n of_o coherence_n the_o formation_n of_o part_n do_v consequent_o commence_v and_o as_o man_n have_v by_o a_o daily_a observation_n find_v it_o in_o egg_n under_o a_o hen_n it_o likely_a do_v proceed_v viz._n two_o hard_a accrescency_n be_v principal_o frame_v and_o compact_v viz._n the_o primum_fw-la vivens_fw-la and_o ultimum_fw-la moriens_fw-la the_o triangle_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o circular_a or_o globular_a and_o chief_a member_n of_o our_o body_n the_o head_n and_o these_o be_v present_o knit_v together_o first_o by_o small_a ligature_n string_n and_o film_n and_o from_o those_o two_o part_n as_o principal_a pillar_n and_o fountain_n of_o life_n motion_n and_o action_n there_o be_v extrude_v and_o produce_v first_o the_o fibres_fw-fr and_o nervous_a part_n and_o ligature_n of_o the_o body_n then_o the_o artery_n vein_n and_o muscle_n and_o last_o the_o flesh_n and_o bone_n and_o such_o blood_n as_o may_v be_v require_v in_o a_o embryo_n state_n or_o a_o chile_n analogous_fw-la thereunto_o proper_a to_o nourish_v and_o apt_a to_o be_v convert_v into_o blood_n and_o to_o catch_v and_o maintain_v the_o vital_a flame_n which_o shall_v be_v kindle_v upon_o the_o first_o breath_n and_o fan_v of_o the_o ambient_fw-la air_n at_o its_o come_n into_o the_o world_n and_o like_v to_o this_o be_v the_o common_a fate_n and_o form_n of_o all_o other_o animal_n and_o the_o production_n of_o live_v body_n whatsoever_o if_o we_o shall_v examine_v they_o and_o begin_v with_o vegetable_n and_o take_v for_o standard_n the_o acorn_n and_o the_o mustardseed_n they_o and_o whatsoever_o other_o seed_n it_o be_v if_o it_o fall_v upon_o unnatural_a or_o barren_a and_o unhospitable_a place_n viz._n into_o water_n barren_a and_o dry_a sand_n upon_o bare_a rock_n or_o salt_n marsh_n or_o the_o like_a the_o seed_n miss_v and_o fail_v of_o a_o suitable_a receptacle_n and_o agreeable_a to_o its_o nature_n can_v be_v expect_v to_o fructify_v according_a to_o its_o natural_a inclination_n and_o power_n but_o must_v needs_o prove_v abortive_a unfruitful_a and_o improlifick_a but_o where_o seed_n fall_v into_o good_a and_o tolerable_a ground_n agreeable_a to_o their_o seminal_a virtue_n inclination_n and_o power_n and_o wherein_o they_o may_v meet_v with_o a_o nutritive_a reception_n there_o they_o be_v first_o somewhat_o melt_v or_o soften_v and_o then_o they_o ferment_n and_o find_v a_o suitable_a fomentation_n in_o their_o recipient_a they_o germinate_a and_o sprout_v and_o as_o the_o sprouts_n bear_v upward_o so_o from_o the_o other_o end_n of_o the_o acorn_n proceed_v fibres_n or_o thin_a very_o small_a string_n moist_a and_o somewhat_o glutinous_a or_o clammy_a thread_n impregnate_v not_o only_o with_o its_o proper_a juice_n but_o endue_v with_o a_o catch_n and_o penetrate_a quality_n enable_v it_o to_o fix_v and_o fasten_v itself_o in_o its_o hospitable_a recipient_a where_o find_v still_o a_o friendly_a and_o benign_a fomentation_n and_o acceptance_n it_o
he_o art_n 11._o we_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v nor_o so_o as_o to_o say_v he_o be_v right_a or_o wrong_n in_o it_o art_n 12._o and_o 13._o we_o observe_v in_o the_o 13._o that_o he_o say_v the_o motion_n of_o the_o brain_n do_v excite_v divers_a sense_n in_o the_o soul_n this_o i_o deny_v and_o he_o offer_v no_o proof_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o say_v but_o go_v on_o and_o say_v that_o beside_o exciting_a sense_n in_o the_o soul_n these_o spirit_n can_v without_o the_o soul_n move_v the_o muscle_n and_o member_n of_o the_o body_n he_o offer_v our_o wink_n in_o proof_n of_o this_o but_o i_o deny_v his_o assertion_n and_o judge_v his_o proof_n very_o insufficient_a art_n 16._o say_v all_o our_o motion_n which_o be_v common_a to_o we_o with_o beast_n may_v be_v do_v by_o we_o without_o the_o soul_n by_o a_o common_a temperament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o member_n and_o organ_n of_o it_o act_v by_o the_o animal_n spirit_n derive_v from_o the_o heart_n and_o direct_v in_o the_o brain_n all_o this_o i_o grant_v and_o do_v take_v these_o to_o be_v the_o main_a ingredient_n for_o the_o frame_n of_o a_o material_a spirit_n art_n 17._o say_v he_o have_v now_o leave_v nothing_o for_o the_o soul_n save_v only_a cogitare-cogitation_n he_o divide_v into_o two_o sort_n one_o of_o action_n the_o other_o of_o passion_n or_o affection_n the_o action_n be_v what_o the_o soul_n will_v to_o do_v the_o passion_n be_v a_o sort_n of_o perception_n or_o apprehension_n find_v in_o we_o which_o the_o soul_n do_v not_o make_v but_o receive_v from_o representation_n of_o outward_a thing_n all_o these_o cogitation_n of_o our_o author_n we_o do_v reject_v and_o say_v that_o whilst_o the_o man_n continue_v to_o be_v so_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v act_v or_o suffer_v separately_z but_o always_o in_o conjunction_n one_o with_o the_o other_o art_n 18._o and_o 19_o he_o divide_v his_o cogitative_a will_n and_o perception_n as_o he_o please_v art_n 20._o and_o 21._o and_o so_o for_o his_o sort_n of_o imagination_n and_o so_o on_o to_o art_n 25._o there_o he_o say_v the_o perception_n or_o passion_n of_o joy_n fear_v anger_n and_o the_o like_a be_v refer_v only_o to_o the_o soul_n either_o not_o consider_v or_o not_o enough_o rember_v that_o these_o passion_n be_v as_o full_o visible_a in_o beast_n as_o in_o man_n and_o if_o they_o be_v referrable_a only_o to_o the_o soul_n than_o such_o a_o soul_n as_o beast_n have_v may_v serve_v well_o enough_o for_o the_o subsistence_n and_o act_v of_o they_o art_n 28._o say_v no_o other_o perception_n do_v so_o much_o agitate_v and_o shake_v the_o soul_n as_o these_o passion_n do_v but_o beast_n be_v as_o much_o transport_v by_o they_o as_o men._n art_n 30._o that_o the_o soul_n be_v unite_v to_o every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o to_o all_o part_n of_o it_o conjunction_n be_v grant_v and_o how_o this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o a_o material_a soul_n be_v plain_a and_o easy_a but_o not_o how_o do_v in_o a_o entire_a spiritual_a substance_n for_o that_o be_v not_o yet_o declare_v by_o our_o author_n and_o we_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v intelligible_a for_o he_o say_v true_o such_o a_o soul_n can_v be_v conceive_v by_o part_n nor_o what_o extension_n it_o have_v or_o consequent_o where_o it_o be_v and_o where_o it_o be_v not_o art_n 31._o but_o yet_o he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o special_a part_n in_o the_o body_n where_o the_o soul_n do_v exercise_v her_o function_n more_o perceivable_o than_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n some_o have_v think_v this_o place_n to_o be_v the_o heart_n and_o other_o to_o be_v the_o brain_n but_o our_o author_n upon_o accurate_a examination_n evident_o know_v it_o not_o to_o be_v in_o either_o of_o these_o but_o that_o it_o be_v in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o brain_n only_o viz._n the_o middle_a or_o most_o inward_a part_n of_o it_o there_o say_v he_o be_v a_o very_a small_a glandula_n or_o kernel_n seat_v in_o the_o middle_a of_o the_o brain_n hang_v in_o the_o very_a channel_n or_o course_n of_o the_o animal_n spirit_n so_o as_o the_o small_a motion_n of_o this_o kernel_n can_v do_v much_o in_o alter_v the_o course_n of_o these_o spirit_n and_o the_o mutation_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o course_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v help_n much_o to_o change_v the_o motion_n of_o this_o kernel_n partur_fw-la montes_n we_o see_v here_o what_o our_o author_n vast_a cogitation_n concern_v the_o soul_n have_v bring_v forth_o viz._n a_o glandula_n admodum_fw-la parva_fw-la a_o very_a small_a kernel_n to_o be_v the_o chair_n of_o state_n or_o the_o prime_a seat_n of_o judgement_n for_o his_o imagine_a soul_n this_o seem_v to_o fall_v far_o short_a of_o our_o flammula_fw-la vitalis_n which_o with_o the_o blood_n pervade_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o actuate_v the_o heart_n the_o brain_n and_o every_o other_o and_o most_o minute_n part_v of_o it_o live_v with_o and_o in_o the_o animal_n and_o not_o quite_o extinguish_v but_o with_o our_o late_a and_o last_o breath_n he_o offer_v we_o not_o one_o word_n concern_v the_o immaterial_a soul_n of_o which_o if_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v though_o but_o out_o of_o his_o own_o cogitation_n this_o be_v the_o proper_a place_n and_o this_o time_n his_o cue_n to_o produce_v they_o but_o his_o silence_n give_v consent_n to_o a_o assertion_n that_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o it_o neither_o quod_fw-la sit_fw-la quid_fw-la sit_fw-la quando_fw-la nor_o quomodo_n to_o the_o vbi_fw-la only_o he_o offer_v this_o guest_n under_o the_o term_n of_o his_o believe_v evident_a knowledge_n his_o friend_n dr._n more_o do_v profess_v to_o disbelieve_v he_o in_o it_o and_o place_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o four_o ventricle_n of_o the_o brain_n by_o divers_a argument_n which_o i_o who_o believe_v neither_o of_o they_o will_v not_o spend_v time_n to_o examine_v art_n 34._o now_o let_v we_o imagine_v say_v he_o as_o his_o mode_n of_o cogitation_n that_o the_o soul_n have_v her_o seat_n principal_o in_o this_o kernel_n and_o thence_o send_v forth_o her_o ray_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n by_o activity_n of_o the_o animal_n spirit_n hence_n whatsoever_o the_o soul_n herself_o may_v be_v her_o ray_n be_v not_o a_o immaterial_a but_o material_a spirit_n and_o one_o will_v think_v her_o ray_n shall_v he_o like_v herself_o well_o but_o say_v he_o this_o kernel_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a seat_n of_o the_o soul_n can_v move_v these_o spirit_n and_o can_v be_v move_v by_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v of_o such_o a_o nature_n that_o she_o can_v receive_v into_o herself_o various_a impression_n viz._n she_o may_v have_v so_o many_o perception_n as_o there_o can_v be_v various_a motion_n make_v in_o this_o kernel_n art_n 35._o the_o animal_n have_v two_o organ_n for_o see_v and_o hear_v and_o two_o hand_n arm_n leg_n and_o foot_n the_o two_o organ_n for_o sense_n receive_v each_o the_o object_n which_o go_v double_a towards_o the_o brain_n till_o they_o come_v to_o this_o kernel_n and_o there_o they_o join_v in_o one_o and_o the_o kernel_n work_v immediate_o in_o the_o soul_n show_v it_o the_o figure_n as_o now_o it_o be_v become_v one_o object_n all_o this_o seem_v to_o show_v no_o more_o but_o the_o product_n of_o his_o own_o imagination_n lead_v by_o the_o affection_n which_o now_o he_o bear_v to_o this_o kernel_n as_o the_o embryo_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n and_o invention_n art_n 36._o if_o the_o object_n perceive_v show_v danger_n they_o excite_v the_o passion_n of_o fear_n in_o the_o soul_n upon_o this_o i_o demand_v where_o fear_n be_v excite_v in_o the_o beast_n which_o have_v not_o such_o soul_n and_o by_o what_o other_o mean_n than_o it_o be_v excite_v in_o man_n art_n 38._o by_o motion_n of_o this_o kernel_n fear_n be_v induce_v into_o the_o soul_n and_o though_o the_o leg_n may_v run_v away_o without_o knowledge_n of_o the_o soul_n yet_o this_o violent_a motion_n of_o they_o make_v another_o motion_n in_o the_o kernel_n by_o who_o help_n the_o soul_n be_v make_v acquaint_v with_o its_o body_n run_v away_o behold_v the_o natural_a and_o remarkable_a effect_n of_o divide_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n and_o ascribe_v some_o action_n to_o the_o one_o and_o some_o to_o the_o other_o separately_z and_o without_o concurrence_n of_o the_o other_o art_n 40._o the_o principal_a effect_n of_o passion_n in_o man_n be_v to_o incite_v and_o dispose_v he_o for_o self-preservation_n either_o by_o fight_n or_o flight_n he_o may_v have_v omit_v the_o word_n in_o man_n for_o the_o case_n be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o beast_n art_n 44._o the_o soul_n by_o help_n of_o his_o kernel_n can_v move_v the_o
tongue_n and_o lip_n so_o as_o this_o kernel_n must_v be_v like_o a_o hand_n to_o the_o soul_n without_o which_o it_o can_v do_v nothing_o of_o moment_n art_n 45._o the_o soul_n can_v excite_v or_o remove_v passion_n by_o its_o own_o power_n or_o will_n but_o be_v put_v to_o contest_v with_o it_o by_o argument_n and_o other_o natural_a help_n and_o we_o know_v that_o oftentimes_o passion_n prevail_v over_o the_o power_n of_o reason_n as_o if_o they_o grow_v but_o out_o of_o the_o same_o root_n both_o viz._n the_o activity_n life_n and_o motion_n of_o a_o material_a spirit_n art_n 47._o in_o the_o contest_v between_o sense_n and_o reason_n in_o man_n here_o say_v he_o the_o kernel_n may_v be_v drive_v by_o the_o soul_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o then_o by_o the_o animal_n spirit_n violent_o set_v on_o the_o other_o side_n or_o some_o spirit_n may_v present_v to_o the_o kernel_n what_o they_o can_v offer_v for_o the_o passion_n other_o may_v do_v the_o like_a on_o behalf_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o what_o it_o advise_v and_o desire_n and_o whither_o the_o kernel_n incline_v that_o side_n prevail_v over_o the_o other_o and_o if_o the_o case_n be_v so_o our_o author_n put_v mankind_n under_o the_o government_n of_o a_o unknown_a immaterial_a but_o confess_o a_o very_a silly_a soul_n that_o must_v apply_v itself_o upon_o all_o occasion_n to_o a_o pitiful_a small_a lump_n of_o matter_n a_o kernel_n without_o who_o kindness_n and_o inclination_n it_o must_v always_o become_v subject_a to_o the_o slavery_n of_o sensuality_n and_o passion_n art_n 48._o one_o will_v think_v here_o that_o he_o will_v say_v all_o soul_n be_v not_o alike_o but_o some_o be_v weak_a and_o some_o strong_a he_o hint_n it_o plain_o yet_o without_o positive_a assertion_n and_o if_o soul_n be_v immaterial_a spirit_n then_o an_z recipiunt_fw-la magis_fw-la &_o minus_fw-la who_o know_v art_n 50._o every_o motion_n of_o the_o kernel_n seem_v natural_o to_o be_v knit_v to_o every_o one_o of_o our_o thought_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o life_n and_o word_n which_o not_o natural_o but_o only_o by_o institution_n be_v significant_a can_v excite_v motion_n in_o the_o kernel_n say_v it_o be_v observable_a in_o beast_n that_o though_o they_o want_v reason_n and_o perhaps_o all_o cogitation_n yet_o they_o have_v all_o the_o motion_n of_o their_o animal_n spirit_n and_o their_o kernel_n who_o motion_n excite_v passion_n in_o they_o as_o well_o as_o we_o in_o we_o tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n of_o prevent_a harm_n to_o they_o but_o these_o he_o will_v not_o call_v affection_n in_o the_o beast_n but_o motion_n of_o the_o nerve_n and_o muscle_n which_o produce_v the_o same_o effect_n in_o beast_n that_o those_o which_o he_o call_v affection_n in_o man_n use_v to_o do_v in_o they_o whence_o it_o seem_v clear_a he_o grant_v the_o same_o nature_n in_o man_n passion_n and_o those_o of_o beast_n before_o needless_o and_o bootless_o deny_v by_o he_o his_o title_n to_o this_o article_n pretend_v to_o show_v how_o man_n soul_n may_v get_v the_o mastery_n of_o their_o passion_n but_o all_o that_o he_o direct_v upon_o that_o point_n be_v that_o well-taught_a spaniel_n be_v learn_v to_o curb_v their_o passion_n and_o to_o sit_v though_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o run_v you_o see_v say_v he_o the_o thing_n be_v feasible_a even_o by_o beast_n and_o therefore_o man_n may_v do_v it_o more_o easy_o and_o effectual_o but_o i_o doubt_v of_o that_o 1._o whether_o humane_a power_n can_v do_v it_o 2._o whether_o beast_n may_v not_o as_o easy_o and_o full_o be_v bring_v to_o it_o as_o man_n art_n 51._o it_o be_v plain_a say_v he_o that_o the_o next_o cause_n of_o passion_n in_o the_o soul_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o motion_n by_o which_o the_o spirit_n do_v stir_v this_o kernel_n which_o be_v in_o the_o middle_a of_o the_o brain_n he_o set_v down_o his_o own_o cogitation_n or_o fiction_n as_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v to_o pass_v for_o a_o grant_v truth_n that_o this_o immaterial_a spirit_n must_v rule_v or_o be_v rule_v by_o this_o diminutive_a kernel_n art_n 122._o he_o say_v when_o that_o fire_n which_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n become_v extinguish_v we_o die_v beyond_o remedy_n art_n 137._o love_n and_o hatred_n joy_n and_o sorrow_n lust_n fear_v etc._n etc._n be_v all_o natural_o refer_v to_o the_o body_n and_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o soul_n but_o as_o it_o be_v join_v to_o the_o body_n art_n 138._o the_o beast_n direct_v their_o life_n no_o otherwise_o than_o by_o such_o corporal_a motion_n as_o man_n usual_o do_v follow_v and_o will_v draw_v the_o soul_n along_o with_o they_o and_o have_v her_o consent_n to_o such_o action_n art_n 139._o he_o say_v we_o ought_v also_o to_o consider_v these_o passion_n as_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o soul_n but_o he_o have_v before_o deny_v they_o do_v natural_o belong_v to_o the_o soul_n and_o here_o he_o do_v not_o show_v that_o they_o do_v depend_v upon_o it_o and_o these_o be_v all_o the_o particular_n we_o find_v in_o this_o late_a philosopher_n concern_v the_o soul_n and_o we_o observe_v upon_o they_o that_o all_o the_o particular_n which_o he_o apply_v and_o refer_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v applicable_a to_o and_o agreeable_a with_o the_o rational_a faculty_n of_o his_o material_a soul_n and_o all_o those_o thing_n action_n or_o passion_n which_o he_o apply_v and_o refer_v only_o to_o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v applicable_a to_o and_o agreeable_a with_o the_o sensual_a faculty_n of_o the_o material_a soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n in_o both_o which_o faculty_n and_o in_o the_o vegetative_a the_o body_n be_v equal_o concern_v and_o so_o be_v the_o whole_a soul_n and_o all_o its_o faculty_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o pertain_v or_o happen_v to_o the_o body_n and_o there_o be_v no_o separation_n make_v or_o to_o be_v make_v betwixt_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o man_n during_o his_o natural_a life_n and_o all_o which_o our_o author_n say_v of_o the_o same_o be_v feign_v out_o of_o his_o own_o heart_n or_o be_v a_o fiction_n of_o his_o own_o cogitation_n utter_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v and_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o he_o have_v say_v any_o thing_n material_a for_o proof_n of_o a_o immaterial_a soul_n of_o man_n or_o that_o deserve_v or_o require_v a_o more_o particular_a reply_n or_o any_o far_a consideration_n hieronimus_fw-la zanchius_n be_v a_o reform_a divine_a of_o strasbourgh_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o our_o k._n h._n 8._o and_o write_v upon_o the_o creation_n and_o god_n work_v then_o make_v his_o book_n be_v in_o quarto_n print_v newstadt_n in_o anno_fw-la 1602._o his_o design_n lead_v he_o to_o treat_v of_o animal_n and_o soul_n and_o lib._n 7._o cap._n 2._o sect._n 12._o he_o say_v the_o life_n of_o animal_n be_v in_o their_o blood_n as_o moses_n say_v also_o and_o that_o all_o man_n agree_v it_o subsist_v by_o heat_n and_o moisture_n sect._n 15._o pag._n 595._o say_v god_n creation_n cease_v not_o with_o the_o first_o week_n but_o he_o still_o daily_o create_v humane_a soul_n and_o form_n the_o body_n of_o animal_n pag._n 598._o every_o animal_n have_v a_o organical_a body_n and_o a_o soul_n with_o vegetative_a motive_n and_o sentient_a faculty_n pag._n 599._o the_o quadrupedes_fw-la be_v the_o next_o sort_n to_o mankind_n both_o for_o the_o part_n of_o their_o body_n and_o the_o strength_n and_o genius_n of_o their_o mind_n or_o soul_n endow_v with_o sense_n both_o outward_a and_o inward_a as_o man_n be_v and_o use_v the_o like_a action_n both_o as_o to_o life_n sense_n and_o motion_n pars_fw-la 3._o lib._n 1._o pag._n 603._o he_o say_v the_o breath_n which_o god_n breathe_v into_o adam_n be_v a_o create_v but_o incorporeal_a thing_n but_o the_o food_n then_o grant_v to_o man_n and_o beast_n be_v alike_o and_o he_o cite_v gen._n 7.15_o the_o beast_n go_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o all_o flesh_n wherein_o be_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n yet_o give_v no_o answer_n to_o it_o nor_o show_v how_o this_o breath_n and_o that_o breathe_v into_o man_n do_v differ_v yet_o he_o will_v have_v we_o learn_v hence_o pag._n 617._o that_o our_o soul_n be_v not_o from_o our_o parent_n per_fw-la traducem_fw-la but_o only_o from_o god_n who_o breathe_v into_o adam_n nostril_n id_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o god_n make_v he_o respire_v by_o his_o nostril_n and_o that_o be_v not_o oppose_v pag._n 618._o again_o this_o breath_n be_v create_v not_o out_o of_o god_n but_o out_o of_o some_o other_o invisible_a thing_n and_o he_o then_o create_v and_o give_v it_o viz._n give_v the_o soul_n in_o that_o visible_a sign_n show_v plato_n make_v a_o difference_n between_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nostram_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
help_n of_o other_o circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n or_o person_n etc._n etc._n this_o we_o leave_v as_o doubtful_a pag._n 740._o there_o be_v in_o animal_n three_o sort_n of_o motion_n 1._o vital_a 2._o command_v or_o stimulate_v 3._o prosecute_a or_o endeavour_v that_o command_v force_n be_v in_o the_o sensitive_a appetite_n from_o whence_o all_o our_o affection_n do_v arise_v and_o they_o reign_v and_o command_v in_o animal_n beast_n and_o man_n as_o animal_n and_o act_n to_o motion_n the_o whole_a body_n or_o the_o several_a member_n of_o it_o the_o prime_n vital_a motion_n be_v that_o of_o the_o pulse_n place_v in_o the_o heart_n the_o seat_n of_o life_n and_o vital_a motion_n act_v by_o the_o soul_n pag._n 741._o the_o actor_n in_o this_o motion_n be_v the_o inward_a heat_n and_o spirit_n viz._n the_o vital_a spirit_n when_o this_o motion_n cease_v all_o animal_n die_v and_o the_o vital_a spirit_n vanish_v but_o say_v he_o it_o do_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o the_o soul_n die_v if_o he_o have_v prove_v or_o shall_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o soul_n in_o man_n which_o do_v ever_o live_v do_v live_v or_o can_v live_v in_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n we_o will_v admit_v of_o this_o caution_n of_o he_o and_o not_o infer_v death_n of_o such_o a_o soul_n by_o the_o cease_v of_o this_o vital_a motion_n in_o the_o body_n palpitation_n of_o the_o heart_n agitate_a by_o the_o affection_n and_o the_o faculty_n of_o respiration_n be_v also_o vital_a motion_n appetive_a command_a motion_n pag._n 724._o be_v vegetative_a sensitive_a and_o intellective_a it_o consist_v in_o prosecute_a thing_n like_v and_o avoid_v thing_n dislike_v with_o passion_n or_o at_o leisure_n cite_v matth._n 15._o they_o all_o proceed_v from_o the_o heart_n and_o have_v their_o rise_n from_o the_o affection_n although_o many_o cause_n may_v work_v in_o and_o upon_o they_o viz._n complexion_n of_o the_o body_n education_n conversation_n example_n doctrine_n etc._n etc._n their_o general_a aspect_n be_v upon_o pleasure_n or_o pain_n to_o follow_v or_o avoid_v the_o vigour_n of_o their_o motion_n grow_v from_o lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v or_o present_a outward_a sense_n great_o affect_v the_o affection_n be_v not_o ill_o in_o themselves_o but_o useful_a helpful_a necessary_a for_o nothing_o be_v from_o god_n or_o nature_n which_o be_v not_o good_a the_o evil_a which_o they_o produce_v be_v but_o by_o accident_n pag._n 744._o the_o prosecutive_a power_n lie_v in_o local_a motion_n this_o have_v its_o root_n in_o the_o brain_n whence_o the_o nerve_n and_o their_o power_n and_o motion_n be_v derive_v animate_v and_o enliven_v by_o spirit_n from_o the_o heart_n this_o say_v he_o galen_n teach_v who_o be_v in_o that_o point_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o any_o other_o testimony_n but_o it_o seem_v both_o he_o and_o hippocrates_n his_o master_n be_v mistake_v concern_v man_n compage_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n if_o our_o author_n fall_v out_o to_o be_v right_a the_o power_n move_v the_o nerve_n and_o in_o they_o be_v the_o vital_a and_o animal_n spirit_n and_o thence_o motion_n be_v derive_v to_o the_o muscle_n bone_n joint_n and_o every_o member_n these_o spirit_n which_o be_v partly_o corporeal_a and_o partly_o quasi_fw-la incorporeal_a for_o spiritual_n excite_v by_o the_o soul_n omit_v how_o or_o by_o what_o mean_n these_o spirit_n move_v and_o guide_v the_o nerve_n which_o be_v like_o reins_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o they_o quicken_v and_o guide_v the_o muscle_n and_o the_o small_a cord_n or_o string_n which_o reach_v to_o they_o by_o these_o be_v the_o bone_n joint_n and_o member_n of_o the_o body_n move_v and_o thus_o the_o move_a power_n of_o the_o soul_n prosecute_v the_o mandate_n of_o the_o appetite_n and_o affection_n this_o seem_v a_o weak_a or_o foolish_a sort_n of_o soul_n that_o will_v or_o must_v use_v its_o motive_n power_n to_o satisfy_v those_o affection_n which_o drive_v to_o action_n against_o the_o will_n and_o dictate_v of_o the_o soul_n itself_o whence_o we_o conclude_v it_o more_o likely_a that_o all_o these_o motion_n be_v natural_a and_o animal_n that_o intellect_n or_o reason_n be_v one_o natural_a faculty_n in_o man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v chief_a and_o have_v a_o priority_n of_o order_n and_o power_n in_o he_o that_o sense_n and_o the_o affection_n be_v another_o natural_a faculty_n in_o man_n and_o that_o vital_a inclination_n and_o power_n of_o vegetation_n be_v another_o natural_a faculty_n in_o he_o not_o divide_v by_o so_o many_o soul_n but_o that_o one_o soul_n serve_v all_o these_o faculty_n viz._n that_o flame_v spirit_n or_o principle_n of_o life_n motion_n and_o action_n first_o breathe_v into_o man_n by_o his_o creator_n and_o once_o quite_o extinguish_v can_v never_o be_v again_o rekindle_v but_o from_o heaven_n by_o miracle_n a_o vital_a spark_n or_o origine_fw-la of_o this_o fire_n likely_a may_v be_v kindle_v in_o heat_n of_o coition_n lodge_v in_o the_o matter_n by_o ordinance_n of_o nature_n and_o her_o director_n this_o have_v its_o appoint_a natural_a time_n and_o mean_n first_o of_o vegetation_n and_o motion_n then_o of_o sense_n and_o affection_n and_o last_o of_o intellect_n and_o reason_n the_o matter_n shape_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n do_v by_o degree_n enlarge_v themselves_o and_o grow_v and_o they_o increase_v the_o blood_n and_o humour_n which_o nourish_v continual_o the_o vital_a active_a flame_n whence_o the_o increaseof_o body_n and_o soul_n go_v on_o together_o till_o they_o arrive_v to_o their_o fullness_n of_o stature_n proportion_n and_o activity_n and_o in_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n they_o grow_v stand_v and_o decay_v together_o this_o active_a be_v the_o motive_n principle_n enliven_a and_o quicken_a all_o man_n faculty_n to_o act_v according_a to_o their_o natural_a power_n propensity_n and_o appointment_n if_o any_o organ_n or_o part_n of_o matter_n be_v out_o of_o order_n this_o active_a power_n not_o be_v rational_a but_o in_o the_o proper_a place_n for_o that_o faculty_n can_v remedy_v that_o want_n but_o can_v only_o put_v on_o to_o action_n all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o body_n fit_a for_o it_o incline_v and_o help_v they_o to_o and_o in_o the_o action_n that_o be_v proper_a or_o peculiar_a to_o they_o in_o the_o heart_n the_o primum_fw-la vivens_fw-la and_o most_o vital_a part_n of_o the_o body_n this_o flame_n and_o heat_n be_v most_o predominant_a and_o intense_a there_o the_o blood_n be_v purify_v and_o ratify_v and_o refine_v there_o the_o vital_a spirit_n be_v generate_v and_o thence_o they_o be_v disperse_v to_o several_a part_n of_o the_o body_n but_o chief_o to_o the_o head_n in_o the_o heart_n therefore_o we_o place_v the_o chief_a seat_n of_o life_n and_o vegetation_n for_o who_o defence_n each_o other_o part_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o expose_v itself_o know_v and_o feel_v that_o the_o loss_n of_o that_o fort_n destroy_v the_o microcosm_n the_o place_n of_o next_o value_n to_o this_o but_o of_o much_o great_a activity_n be_v the_o head_n for_o there_o reside_v the_o sense_n both_o internal_a and_o external_n and_o there_o reside_v also_o the_o rational_a faculty_n viz._n the_o intellect_n and_o the_o judgement_n so_o as_o these_o two_o faculty_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n be_v very_o close_a and_o near_a borderer_n upon_o one_o another_o and_o although_o our_o author_n go_v with_o the_o stream_n of_o derive_v man_n affection_n all_o from_o the_o sense_n therein_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o apparent_a mistake_n for_o as_o we_o do_v allow_v to_o the_o intellect_n a_o will_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o sense_n a_o appetite_n so_o there_o must_v be_v allow_v to_o reason_n a_o power_n of_o make_v and_o gain_v the_o affection_n of_o equal_a or_o great_a potency_n and_o may_v then_o that_o which_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o sense_n whence_o in_o contest_v betwixt_o reason_n and_o sense_n or_o will_v and_o appetite_n that_o part_n which_o prevail_v upon_o the_o affection_n must_v be_v victor_n over_o the_o other_o for_o the_o affection_n stir_v and_o gain_v excite_v move_v and_o sway_v the_o heart_n which_o be_v draw_v and_o bend_v by_o they_o to_o resolve_v and_o execute_v according_o and_o there_o appear_v no_o such_o difference_n between_o the_o prevalency_n of_o either_o of_o these_o faculty_n as_o that_o man_n can_v determine_v which_o do_v often_o prevail_v or_o which_o of_o they_o be_v natural_o endow_v with_o the_o most_o strong_a and_o prevalent_a power_n each_o have_v a_o power_n in_o some_o person_n more_o than_o in_o other_o and_o in_o all_o person_n more_o at_o one_o time_n or_o upon_o one_o occasion_n then_o upon_o another_o in_o no_o person_n natural_o do_v the_o stream_n run_v one_o way_n but_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v it_o be_v not_o of_o willing_a or_o run_v but_o god_n give_v the_o victory_n perhaps_o often_o but_o
fol._n 156._o n._n 2._o cites_n those_o who_o do_v not_o agree_v to_o this_o n._n 3._o he_o dispute_v this_o point_n fol._n 174._o n._n 23._o say_v the_o will_n depend_v upon_o knowledge_n both_o in_o its_o execution_n and_o omission_n fol._n 195._o n._n 4._o the_o will_n intend_v to_o execute_v can_v compare_v the_o medium_n by_o which_o it_o shall_v work_v make_v its_o own_o choice_n of_o they_o but_o the_o intellect_n must_v compare_v the_o medium_n by_o which_o execution_n may_v be_v make_v and_o then_o it_o seem_v doubt_v whether_o still_o the_o will_n may_v choose_v which_o medium_fw-la it_o will_v use_v in_o the_o execution_n although_o that_o choose_a seem_v to_o the_o intellect_n less_o accommodate_v to_o the_o execution_n intend_v cites_n many_o opinion_n that_o it_o can_v so_o choose_v and_o many_o other_o opinion_n n._n 5._o that_o it_o can_v fol._n 197._o n._n 14._o cites_n tho._n aquinas_n say_v the_o whole_a reason_n and_o power_n of_o election_n lie_v in_o the_o intellect_n or_o judgement_n because_o that_o can_v only_o distinguish_v the_o reason_n of_o thing_n what_o be_v fit_a and_o likely_a and_o what_o not_o also_o which_o be_v more_o or_o less_o fit_a and_o apt_a and_o therefore_o the_o will_n be_v determine_v to_o the_o medium_n of_o execution_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o act_n of_o it_o and_o to_o this_o i_o agree_v intend_v that_o in_o both_o case_n it_o obey_v the_o judgement_n and_o be_v determine_v by_o it_o fol._n 200._o n._n 1._o ad_fw-la 6._o assert_n a_o liberty_n in_o mankind_n to_o act_v free_o he_o pass_v it_o under_o the_o term_n of_o free_a will_n which_o we_o continue_v to_o express_v by_o name_n of_o a_o liberty_n of_o judgement_n intend_v both_o judgement_n and_o will_n to_o be_v power_n or_o act_n of_o the_o intellect_n but_o the_o will_v of_o itself_o without_o knowledge_n depend_v for_o its_o direction_n upon_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o intellect_n which_o be_v the_o judgement_n all_o be_v act_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v contest_v or_o disagree_v with_o one_o another_o and_o it_o seem_v the_o link_n be_v thus_o knit_v and_o fasten_v the_o soul_n in_o the_o head_n incite_v or_o stir_v assist_v and_o act_n in_o the_o organ_n there_o place_v fit_v and_o intend_v by_o god_n and_o nature_n for_o the_o exercise_n and_o performance_n of_o perceive_v reason_v judge_a and_o willing_a and_o all_o other_o act_n to_o a_o humane_a intellect_n belong_v the_o activity_n proceed_v from_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o degree_n of_o perfection_n in_o act_v depend_v much_o upon_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o animal_n spirit_n and_o fit_a frame_n of_o the_o organ_n find_v in_o that_o region_n for_o if_o they_o be_v faulty_a the_o soul_n can_v amend_v they_o nor_o act_v otherwise_o than_o according_a to_o their_o capacity_n and_o to_o a_o great_a or_o less_o perfection_n according_o we_o place_v the_o judgement_n in_o the_o supreme_a degree_n of_o government_n and_o may_v term_v it_o the_o result_n of_o the_o rational_a faculty_n upon_o which_o the_o inclination_n and_o will_n be_v dependent_a and_o by_o which_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v natural_o lead_v and_o guide_v this_o judgement_n be_v more_o or_o less_o perfect_a as_o the_o animal_n spirit_n be_v more_o or_o less_o pure_a and_o rectify_v and_o the_o material_n fine_a and_o plentiful_a and_o the_o organ_n sound_a and_o sit_v and_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v advance_v by_o outward_a or_o accidental_a addition_n as_o by_o education_n learning_n example_n experience_n and_o practice_n and_o may_v be_v disadvantage_v by_o the_o ill_a temper_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o paucity_n or_o superfluity_n of_o they_o by_o a_o discomposure_n or_o distemper_n in_o matter_n or_o by_o unsoundness_n or_o unfitness_n of_o any_o of_o the_o natural_a and_o necessary_a organ_n to_o such_o operation_n belong_v also_o from_o outward_a distemper_n and_o disease_n from_o ill_a accident_n as_o education_n example_n company_n practice_n and_o like_a unhappiness_n if_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o immaterial_a spark_n or_o spirit_n it_o will_v seem_v more_o strange_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v affect_v help_v or_o hinder_v by_o outward_a accident_n as_o infancy_n disease_n old_a age_n learning_n example_n company_n and_o the_o like_a or_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v oppose_v and_o overrule_v in_o government_n by_o affection_n and_o passion_n which_o be_v believe_v to_o proceed_v from_o flesh_n and_o blood_n if_o the_o intellect_n and_o all_o its_o office_n and_o power_n proceed_v from_o the_o soul_n act_v in_o the_o region_n and_o organ_n appoint_v and_o proper_a for_o the_o production_n of_o all_o its_o performance_n and_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n proceed_v from_o the_o same_o soul_n act_v in_o the_o animal_n part_n or_o inferior_a region_n and_o in_o the_o organ_n appoint_v for_o the_o production_n of_o such_o faculty_n if_o both_o sort_n viz._n intellect_n and_o affection_n be_v actual_o proceed_v from_o the_o same_o soul_n and_o equal_o radicate_v in_o it_o this_o wonder_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o less_o that_o the_o continual_a contest_v between_o they_o shall_v be_v maintain_v in_o the_o condition_n which_o we_o find_v it_o be_v sometime_o one_o sort_v prevail_v and_o sometime_o the_o other_o under_o the_o natural_a act_n of_o a_o soul_n which_o be_v equal_o productive_a of_o they_o both_o and_o do_v not_o or_o can_v favour_v one_o of_o they_o more_o than_o the_o other_o and_o they_o seem_v plant_v in_o man_n by_o nature_n which_o be_v the_o appointment_n of_o god_n as_o opposite_a power_n sway_v by_o the_o judgement_n after_o a_o paternal_a regiment_n sometime_o yield_v to_o the_o affection_n sometime_o pacify_v they_o and_o sometime_o crucify_a they_o and_o to_o such_o degree_n as_o to_o sacrifice_v the_o body_n its_o life_n and_o member_n to_o the_o rigorous_a resolution_n of_o the_o judgement_n which_o man_n have_v use_v to_o call_v a_o wilfulness_n but_o it_o seem_v of_o a_o will_n guide_v and_o rule_v by_o the_o judgement_n and_o yet_o at_o its_o full_a and_o natural_a freedom_n natural_o determine_v by_o the_o result_n of_o the_o judgement_n our_o author_n say_v freedom_n be_v a_o power_n which_o have_v ready_a all_o requisite_n for_o act_v may_v act_v or_o not_o act_v at_o its_o pleasure_n now_o upon_o weigh_v this_o definition_n i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o man_n such_o a_o freedom_n by_o way_n of_o regiment_n as_o will_v be_v thereto_o agreeable_a the_o judgement_n be_v indeed_o at_o a_o full_a natural_a freedom_n but_o it_o be_v not_o natural_a to_o the_o judgement_n to_o act_v in_o matter_n of_o moment_n without_o a_o consult_v of_o reason_n in_o such_o case_n and_o than_o it_o can_v go_v from_o that_o which_o appear_v best_a for_o the_o compositum_fw-la all_o thing_n then_o appear_v consider_v it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o trivial_a matter_n which_o do_v not_o need_v or_o deserve_v a_o consideration_n the_o act_n may_v be_v so_o free_a as_o to_o be_v very_o incertain_a and_o to_o pass_v rather_o under_o the_o name_n of_o chance_n than_o choice_n fol._n 205._o n._n 2._o some_o say_v the_o liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la be_v a_o move_a power_n distinct_a both_o from_o the_o intellect_n and_o the_o will._n fol._n 207._o n._n 12._o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o power_n of_o act_v free_o and_o able_a to_o determine_v itself_o this_o we_o say_v agree_v full_o to_o the_o judgement_n and_o give_v all_o natural_a liberty_n by_o that_o medium_fw-la to_o the_o will._n fol._n 235._o n._n 8._o the_o brute_n be_v capable_a of_o habit_n and_o action_n that_o be_v not_o natural_a to_o they_o and_o yet_o may_v be_v acquire_v and_o make_v easy_a to_o they_o by_o exercise_n n._n 9_o the_o cogitative_a power_n may_v be_v cogent_o set_v at_o work_n by_o the_o empire_n of_o reason_n or_o judgement_n and_o be_v determine_v by_o it_o the_o same_n which_o i_o have_v say_v for_o the_o will._n fol._n 257._o n._n 1._o substance_n so_o simple_a as_o that_o they_o do_v not_o consist_v of_o matter_n and_o form_n as_o heaven_n angel_n a_o humane_a soul_n and_o the_o materia_fw-la prima_fw-la because_o they_o can_v be_v produce_v by_o any_o creature_n they_o have_v no_o rule_n for_o their_o specification_n or_o thing_n of_o a_o specifical_a nature_n with_o they_o fol._n 262._o n._n 2._o say_v the_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v immortal_a for_o that_o else_o there_o can_v not_o be_v future_a reward_n and_o punishment_n the_o great_a inducement_n to_o a_o holy_a and_o civil_a life_n and_o grant_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immortal_a the_o substance_n of_o it_o in_o a_o separate_a state_n be_v consequential_a this_o last_o i_o grant_v but_o not_o the_o first_o fol._n 259._o n._n 5._o cites_n the_o lateran_n council_n hold_v by_o leo_n x._o where_o all_o be_v condemn_v who_o say_v the_o soul_n be_v mortal_a and_o it_o be_v command_v to_o all_o
my_o opinion_n when_o i_o find_v roccius_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o word_n and_o melanchton_n apparent_o to_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o peter_n martyr_n approach_v thereunto_o and_o near_o than_o i_o do_v expect_v other_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o any_o short_a time_n your_o quotation_n out_o of_o dr._n cave_n be_v draw_v by_o he_o out_o of_o euseb_n hist_o lib._n 6._o cap._n 36_o and_o be_v quote_v in_o my_o treatise_n this_o particular_a finish_v your_o opposition_n to_o my_o treatise_n and_o shall_v put_v a_o end_n also_o to_o my_o defence_n yet_o because_o i_o have_v as_o you_o may_v see_v some_o room_n leave_v upon_o this_o sheet_n of_o paper_n i_o be_o thereby_o invite_v to_o remember_v what_o you_o say_v in_o your_o second_o paragraph_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a that_o my_o treatise_n may_v be_v the_o result_n of_o some_o year_n study_v to_o set_v your_o imagination_n right_a upon_o that_o point_n i_o give_v you_o this_o account_n of_o it_o that_o in_o summer_n 1690_o i_o practise_v my_o monastic_a discipline_n read_v within_o door_n and_o labour_v the_o ground_n abroad_o mutans_fw-la quadrata_fw-la rotundis_fw-la what_o i_o read_v within_o i_o ruminate_v without_o i_o consider_v the_o close_a connection_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o even_o the_o contexture_n of_o they_o that_o humane_a constitution_n and_o faculty_n be_v often_o alter_v by_o diet_n air_n sickness_n accident_n that_o the_o best_a reason_n memory_n or_o judgement_n may_v be_v alter_v or_o spoil_v by_o divers_a like_o mean_n and_o recover_v sometime_o by_o medicine_n apply_v to_o the_o disaffect_v part_n or_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n how_o this_o might_n competere_fw-la with_o the_o act_n and_o power_n of_o a_o substantial_a angelical_a spirit_n as_o the_o soul_n or_o form_n of_o man_n i_o find_v myself_o unable_a to_o comprehend_v but_o that_o rather_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v a_o dependency_n of_o the_o soul_n upon_o the_o body_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o body_n upon_o the_o soul_n hence_o i_o conclude_v there_o be_v a_o close_a and_o natural_a contexture_n between_o they_o and_o that_o likely_a they_o be_v both_o of_o one_o same_o nature_n connatural_a to_o man_n viz._n his_o natural_a and_o constituent_a part_n then_o i_o consider_v the_o brute_n and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o same_o sense_n and_o affection_n with_o man_n and_o some_o sort_n of_o understanding_n fancy_n and_o memory_n and_o all_o liable_a to_o like_a accident_n also_o both_o sort_n live_v by_o blood_n breath_n and_o fuel_n or_o food_n and_o if_o any_o of_o these_o fail_v the_o man_n must_v die_v as_o well_o as_o the_o beast_n so_o as_o the_o man_n soul_n can_v help_v in_o such_o or_o any_o other_o vital_a or_o natural_a necessity_n no_o more_o than_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o beast_n can_v do_v in_o like_a case_n and_o thus_o i_o go_v on_o consider_v all_o the_o summer_n and_o come_v tube_n incline_v i_o fall_v upon_o a_o very_a natural_a course_n of_o proceed_v in_o such_o case_n follow_v by_o st._n paul_n act_v 17.17_o he_o dispute_v his_o tenet_n in_o all_o place_n and_o with_o all_o person_n of_o his_o conversation_n proper_a for_o that_o purpose_n and_o so_o do_v i_o and_o read_v book_n such_o as_o i_o have_v or_o can_v buy_v or_o borrow_v last_o one_o lend_v i_o a_o book_n call_v richard_n baxter_n die_v thought_n and_o the_o weak_a defence_n which_o he_o and_o sir_n kenelm_n digby_n and_o doctor_n more_o make_v on_o behalf_n of_o that_o immortal_a opinion_n fortify_v my_o conception_n to_o the_o contrary_n in_o christmas_n i_o discourse_v with_o many_o about_o it_o and_o soon_o after_o candlemass_o i_o begin_v to_o write_v and_o finish_v my_o treatise_n about_o a_o week_n after_o midsummer_n in_o an._n 1691_o since_o which_o time_n divers_a have_v peruse_v it_o and_o i_o refuse_v it_o to_o none_o who_o be_v like_a to_o use_v it_o clean_o and_o be_v capable_a of_o it_o i_o know_v you_o observe_v that_o i_o begin_v with_o baxter_n book_n and_o end_n with_o it_o quote_v and_o examine_v of_o it_o all_o along_o nor_o do_v i_o find_v it_o difficult_a to_o refute_v all_o that_o he_o say_v in_o maintenance_n of_o the_o immortality_n except_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o quote_v and_o those_o text_n in_o he_o and_o in_o you_o seem_v to_o i_o the_o only_a defence_n of_o the_o immortality_n battery_n you_o perceive_v be_v and_o may_v be_v raise_v against_o the_o intention_n and_o effect_n of_o those_o text_n which_o be_v quote_v to_o that_o purpose_n and_o of_o what_o force_n they_o will_v prove_v man_n be_v not_o like_v speedy_o to_o determine_v but_o my_o judgement_n be_v not_o convince_v or_o persuade_v that_o by_o forbear_v the_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o immortality_n and_o press_v in_o its_o stead_n that_o from_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o last_o judgement_n there_o can_v any_o detriment_n arise_v to_o the_o progress_n and_o maintenance_n of_o the_o christian_a and_o special_o of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n if_o i_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o argue_v upon_o this_o point_n and_o towards_o the_o clear_v of_o it_o as_o st._n paul_n do_v both_o in_o synagogue_n market_n and_o school_n i_o do_v it_o much_o more_o desirous_o with_o you_o as_o profess_v myself_o your_o much_o oblige_a and_o very_o humble_a servant_n 8_o march_v 1692._o after_o this_o answer_n to_o the_o opponent_n objection_n he_o be_v p1ease_v to_o reply_v thereunto_o in_o june_n follow_v and_o his_o replication_n be_v divide_v into_o seven_o paragraph_n his_o 1._o parag_v insist_o that_o i_o have_v not_o make_v that_o proof_n which_o he_o demand_v of_o the_o quomodo_n how_o a_o material_a spirit_n be_v able_a to_o act_v or_o do_v act_v the_o humane_a faculty_n and_o power_n know_v to_o be_v in_o mankind_n and_o carry_v to_o a_o excellent_a perfection_n in_o some_o man_n as_o this_o be_v a_o repeat_v demand_v so_o i_o say_v that_o i_o answer_v to_o it_o as_o before_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n and_o act_n in_o the_o world_n the_o reason_n and_o cause_n of_o which_o man_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v enough_o comprehend_v or_o perceive_v our_o lord_n tell_v we_o that_o if_o one_o shall_v watch_v the_o corn_n night_n and_o day_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o perceive_v so_o as_o to_o know_v the_o immediate_a and_o proper_a cause_n of_o its_o growth_n but_o it_o will_v bring_v forth_o first_o the_o stalk_v next_o the_o blade_n than_o the_o ear_n and_o last_o the_o full_a corn_n in_o it_o man_n not_o perceive_v the_o how_o or_o the_o why_o of_o it_o and_o the_o case_n be_v like_a for_o all_o other_o plant_n how_o it_o be_v or_o whence_o it_o proceed_v that_o they_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o leave_n of_o wondrous_a variety_n and_o diversity_n in_o colour_n figure_n taste_n smell_v bulk_n and_o operation_n we_o see_v that_o each_o of_o they_o have_v root_n bole_n skin_n or_o bark_n and_o we_o perceive_v and_o know_v that_o each_o of_o they_o have_v a_o active_a and_o lively_a juice_n or_o spirit_n ascend_v from_o the_o root_n into_o the_o bowl_n branch_n and_o top_n of_o they_o and_o this_o composition_n of_o matter_n and_o form_n in_o plant_n we_o do_v reasonable_o believe_v to_o be_v sufficient_a and_o effectual_a for_o the_o production_n of_o all_o that_o do_v ordinary_o grow_v out_o of_o they_o but_o that_o solomon_n or_o any_o other_o man_n ever_o do_v or_o can_v declare_v to_o we_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o proceed_n or_o the_o next_o reason_n of_o they_o and_o of_o that_o great_a variety_n in_o their_o nature_n and_o production_n i_o do_v not_o know_v nor_o believe_v nor_o do_v i_o think_v it_o a_o work_n of_o humane_a power_n to_o do_v next_o plant_n we_o may_v consider_v the_o infect_v solomon_n point_v we_o to_o the_o spider_n the_o locust_n the_o aunt_n and_o the_o bee_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o motion_n and_o action_n solomon_n tell_v we_o they_o do_v what_o be_v proper_a and_o best_a for_o their_o being_n but_o as_o wonder_n to_o he_o and_o we_o who_o know_v neither_o the_o how_o nor_o the_o why_o of_o they_o and_o so_o for_o the_o fish_n and_o the_o bird_n we_o can_v know_v by_o what_o secret_a engine_n and_o motor_n divers_a particular_n be_v do_v among_o they_o concern_v the_o quadrupedes_fw-la we_o see_v and_o know_v they_o have_v the_o same_o flesh_n blood_n bones_o and_o breath_n that_o man_n have_v and_o in_o their_o kind_n suitable_a bodily_a member_n as_o head_n heart_n liver_n lung_n artery_n vein_n fibres_n muscle_n etc._n etc._n that_o man_n have_v also_o a_o generation_n and_o production_n all_o alike_o i_o may_v demand_v what_o make_v they_o live_v and_o grow_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o their_o dam_n what_o form_v their_o member_n and_o how_o be_v they_o make_v in_o those_o
therefore_o this_o expression_n shall_v be_v pass_v here_o but_o for_o a_o quibble_n fit_a to_o serve_v the_o turn_n of_o this_o indiscerptible_a or_o undividable_a soul_n as_o our_o author_n here_o call_v it_o and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v for_o the_o creando_fw-la infunditur_fw-la &_o infundendo_fw-la creature_n it_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o riddle_n and_o both_o of_o they_o for_o mystical_a expression_n concern_v a_o mysterious_a imaginary_a soul_n and_o both_o intend_v rather_o to_o amuse_v than_o to_o instruct_v the_o auditor_n here_o again_o he_o recite_v solomon_n text_n the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o by_o far_o the_o great_a part_n of_o humane_a soul_n go_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v pag._n 17._o but_o say_v that_o before_o go_v to_o the_o devil_n it_o go_v first_o to_o god_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o itself_o to_o he_o and_o receive_v its_o judgement_n from_o he_o this_o assertion_n say_v i_o be_v mere_o arbitrary_a and_o precarious_a but_o very_o necessary_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o that_o sense_n which_o he_o will_v put_v upon_o solomon_n text_n he_o add_v the_o soul_n must_v appear_v before_o the_o god_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o flesh_n as_o arbiter_n and_o final_a judge_n intend_v before_o it_o go_v to_o the_o devil_n or_o hell_n it_o seem_v strange_a to_o i_o that_o our_o author_n shall_v be_v so_o positive_a and_o certain_a in_o this_o assertion_n as_o he_o be_v without_o offer_v any_o sort_n of_o proof_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o if_o this_o be_v true_a it_o will_v put_v a_o period_n to_o all_o far_a dispute_n upon_o the_o difference_n now_o in_o discourse_n among_o we_o that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v there_o must_v be_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n first_o grant_v or_o suppose_v and_o this_o methinks_v shall_v have_v mind_v he_o of_o the_o great_a need_n there_o be_v of_o make_v the_o best_a and_o strong_a proof_n that_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o it_o but_o of_o that_o sort_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n here_o neither_o from_o scripture_n reason_n nor_o experience_n but_o a_o bare_a supposal_n of_o our_o author_n draw_v for_o aught_o appear_v out_o of_o his_o own_o imagination_n and_o let_v he_o prove_v such_o a_o go_v of_o the_o soul_n to_o god_n as_o he_o have_v here_o assert_v or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o intermediate_n judgement_n give_v upon_o soul_n between_o death_n and_o the_o day_n of_o general_n doom_n or_o judgement_n or_o let_v any_o other_o man_n make_v proof_n of_o either_o of_o these_o point_n convince_a or_o somewhat_o clear_a and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o submit_v and_o confess_v my_o present_a opinion_n to_o be_v a_o error_n whence_o it_o seem_v our_o author_n do_v not_o enough_o consider_v the_o importation_n of_o what_o he_o pretend_v here_o to_o impose_v upon_o the_o mere_a credit_n and_o power_n of_o his_o ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la pag._n 18._o say_v the_o ingress_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v obscure_a and_o so_o the_o egress_n and_o i_o grant_v it_o so_o much_o as_o the_o one_o and_o other_o be_v hardly_o credible_a he_o say_v that_o the_o radical_a moisture_n or_o balsam_n be_v the_o oil_n that_o maintain_v the_o natural_a heat_n or_o the_o bridle_n which_o restrain_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n from_o depart_v and_o such_o departure_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o natural_a death_n and_o this_o i_o grant_v have_v before_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o very_o near_o the_o word_n viz._n that_o the_o radical_a moisture_n maintain_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n this_o moisture_n must_v be_v maintain_v by_o food_n and_o the_o flame_n in_o the_o blood_n fan_v by_o breath_n and_o the_o extinguishment_n of_o this_o flame_n be_v death_n what_o he_o say_v more_o of_o the_o soul_n here_o be_v suppositis_fw-la non_fw-la supponendis_fw-la pag._n 17._o he_o have_v say_v the_o soul_n be_v a_o create_v rational_a spirit_n conscious_a to_o itself_o of_o moral_a good_a and_o evil_a i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o soul_n alone_o but_o the_o man_n together_o that_o be_v so_o conscious_a to_o himself_o and_o that_o not_o from_o bare_a and_o uncultivated_a nature_n but_o assist_v by_o rule_n derive_v from_o god_n education_n precept_n or_o opinion_n pag._n 19_o he_o call_v understanding_n a_o faculty_n of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n i_o call_v it_o a_o faculty_n of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v a_o contexture_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n the_o soul_n can_v understand_v without_o the_o brain_n and_o if_o that_o be_v craze_v or_o spoil_v the_o soul_n can_v understand_v and_o hence_o all_o here_o say_v be_v answerable_a by_o apply_v what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o soul_n to_o the_o rational_a faculty_n in_o man._n pag._n 20._o he_o allow_v that_o humane_a discretion_n or_o judgement_n be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o of_o the_o will_n and_o that_o the_o will_n follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o the_o judgement_n as_o i_o have_v before_o say_v and_o attribute_n all_o to_o the_o soul_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o rational_a faculty_n in_o man_n and_o can_v be_v act_v without_o the_o brain_n and_o but_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n and_o temper_n of_o that_o organ_n pag._n 21._o say_v the_o power_n of_o cogitation_n be_v in_o the_o soul_n i_o say_v in_o the_o brain_n act_v by_o the_o soul_n he_o set_v out_o the_o great_a power_n of_o conscience_n which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o man_n upon_o himself_o and_o i_o agree_v it_o and_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o understanding_n part_n or_o faculty_n he_o say_v it_o be_v potent_a and_o terrible_a and_o i_o grant_v it_o and_o say_v that_o terror_n be_v ground_v in_o fear_n of_o suffer_v and_o the_o erroneus_fw-la conscience_n as_o potent_a and_o terrible_a as_o the_o best_a ground_v when_o the_o memory_n judgement_n and_o passion_n fail_v as_o in_o death_n they_o all_o do_v perish_v with_o their_o proper_a organ_n conscience_n fail_v with_o they_o when_o all_o man_n thought_n and_o his_o very_a faculty_n of_o think_v perish_v none_o of_o they_o ever_o to_o return_v till_o the_o time_n of_o our_o resurrection_n and_o then_o they_o shall_v all_o return_n and_o be_v revive_v as_o former_o he_o pag._n 20._o call_v the_o discretion_n the_o guide_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o will_n but_o here_o pag._n 23._o he_o make_v it_o but_o a_o counsellor_n to_o the_o will_n i_o hold_v with_o the_o former_a and_o say_v the_o will_n follow_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o judgement_n in_o all_o deliberate_a act_n yet_o act_v free_o viz._n with_o such_o a_o freedom_n as_o be_v natural_a to_o it_o a_o promptitude_n and_o inclination_n to_o that_o compliance_n be_v lead_v and_o yet_o run_v free_o as_o he_o say_v who_o word_n it_o be_v draw_v and_o run_v free_o i_o say_v guide_v or_o direct_v and_o run_v free_o pag._n 25._o he_o say_v the_o will_n can_v command_v the_o body_n absolute_o i_o say_v no_o otherwise_o than_o as_o the_o judgement_n guide_v the_o will_n viz._n by_o a_o natural_a and_o easy_a compliance_n pag._n 27._o he_o magnify_v the_o power_n of_o the_o will_n which_o i_o say_v can_v act_v deliberate_o but_o by_o direction_n of_o the_o judgement_n and_o that_o must_v natural_o act_v by_o choose_v bonum_fw-la apparens_fw-la &_o magis_fw-la bonum_fw-la and_o can_v natural_o choose_v or_o direct_v the_o will_n to_o act_v that_o which_o be_v malum_fw-la apparens_fw-la to_o the_o state_n or_o benefit_n of_o the_o party_n act_v pag._n 28._o that_o which_o he_o call_v here_o a_o struggle_v of_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o struggle_v of_o the_o rational_a faculty_n against_o the_o sensual_a desire_n pag._n 29._o his_o pondus_fw-la or_o inclination_n of_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n to_o the_o body_n be_v but_o invention_n and_o have_v neither_o ground_n nor_o proof_n pag._n 30._o say_v angel_n have_v assume_v body_n i_o say_v not_o of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o show_v not_o any_o affection_n in_o they_o to_o be_v embodied_n as_o he_o seem_v to_o pretend_v he_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v the_o soul_n immortal_a and_o have_v as_o such_o a_o inclination_n to_o the_o body_n i_o say_v such_o inclination_n of_o a_o immaterial_a spirit_n to_o a_o body_n himself_o pag._n 7._o call_v a_o astonish_a mystery_n and_o i_o think_v it_o very_o incongruous_a to_o reason_n and_o common_a sense_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immortal_a and_o that_o as_o such_o it_o have_v a_o inclination_n to_o the_o body_n i_o say_v prove_v both_o alike_o viz._n neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o except_o his_o say_n may_v pass_v for_o prove_v pag._n 31._o he_o call_v god_n breathe_v into_o man_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n the_o infusion_n of_o a_o new_o create_v soul_n into_o he_o this_o i_o have_v deny_v and_o
and_o then_o condemn_v it_o his_o son_n constantius_n forbid_v it_o in_o place_n where_o he_o be_v or_o have_v full_a power_n whence_o in_o that_o empire_n this_o practice_n fall_v to_o decay_v and_o in_o time_n become_v quite_o abolish_v the_o christian_a religion_n have_v oppose_v and_o overcome_v it_o in_o all_o place_n of_o its_o plantation_n and_o final_o it_o be_v now_o come_v to_o be_v root_v out_o of_o all_o the_o know_a world_n and_o we_o know_v of_o no_o nation_n in_o europe_n asia_n or_o africa_n where_o shed_v of_o blood_n be_v use_v in_o sacrifice_n to_o their_o god_n here_o be_v a_o great_a and_o evident_a change_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o universal_a practice_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n concern_v religion_n and_o no_o man_n will_v pretend_v to_o say_v that_o this_o change_n be_v for_o the_o worse_o but_o for_o the_o better_a although_o it_o have_v god_n approbation_n by_o moses_n and_o be_v not_o positive_o forbid_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o apostle_n after_o our_o lord_n death_n use_v it_o act_n 21.20_o thousand_o of_o believe_a jew_n be_v yet_o zealous_a of_o the_o law_n verse_n 26._o paul_n go_v to_o the_o temple_n with_o the_o four_o man_n that_o have_v a_o vow_n and_o attend_v till_o a_o offer_n shall_v be_v offer_v for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o yet_o we_o see_v this_o practice_n now_o utter_o abolish_v and_o we_o give_v god_n thanks_o for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o as_o i_o think_v there_o be_v great_a reason_n and_o by_o the_o change_n of_o this_o most_o ancient_a universal_a practice_n in_o religion_n i_o pretend_v to_o have_v raise_v a_o eminent_a impeachment_n to_o the_o force_n of_o our_o author_n argument_n from_o the_o antiquity_n and_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o immaterial_a opinion_n we_o know_v the_o papist_n plead_v in_o like_a manner_n against_o the_o reformation_n intend_v to_o be_v put_v upon_o their_o error_n though_o ancient_a and_o very_o general_o receive_v heretofore_o into_o the_o christian_a church_n of_o the_o dark_a age_n pass_v from_o anno_fw-la 600_o even_o down_o to_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n and_o other_o reformer_n then_o arise_v but_o we_o do_v not_o accept_v their_o plea_n of_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n as_o sufficient_a for_o the_o justification_n of_o their_o error_n i_o will_v but_o nominate_v dr._n comber_n plea_n for_o a_o divine_a right_n of_o title_n by_o force_n of_o the_o same_o argument_n because_o i_o have_v answer_v it_o in_o a_o particular_a treatise_n not_o yet_o publish_v but_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n i_o think_v it_o reasonable_a to_o conclude_v that_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n of_o a_o opinion_n be_v but_o a_o argument_n to_o that_o favour_n viz._n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v well_o weigh_v and_o thorough_o consider_v before_o it_o be_v change_v and_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v change_v except_o there_o appear_v sufficient_a and_o convince_a proof_n that_o the_o same_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v but_o not_o to_o be_v repute_v of_o such_o force_n or_o power_n as_o to_o silence_v all_o argument_n which_o may_v be_v make_v against_o it_o or_o to_o stop_v all_o manner_n of_o proceed_n towards_o a_o conviction_n thereupon_o to_o stop_v the_o press_n from_o publish_v such_o argument_n i_o do_v not_o allow_v but_o the_o way_n full_o to_o stop_v &_o silence_v they_o be_v to_o make_v rational_a and_o substantial_a answer_n to_o they_o which_o i_o profess_v myself_o now_o and_o ever_o willing_a to_o receive_v and_o embrace_v with_o all_o sincerity_n according_a to_o the_o merit_n which_o to_o my_o understanding_n shall_v appear_v in_o they_o thus_o far_o i_o have_v go_v out_o of_o my_o ordinary_a way_n of_o make_v stricture_n upon_o our_o author_n page_n that_o i_o may_v make_v the_o more_o full_a answer_n to_o this_o grand_a argument_n of_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n offer_v on_o behalf_n of_o the_o soul_n immateriality_n pag._n 105._o say_v one_o man_n be_v of_o more_o worth_n than_o all_o the_o inferior_a creature_n this_o i_o do_v not_o grant_v pag._n 106._o his_o discourse_n here_o import_v that_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n of_o a_o future_a state_n but_o by_o the_o soul_n immortality_n a_o error_n which_o have_v general_o mislead_v the_o world_n before_o he_o pag._n 107._o i_o say_v to_o this_o the_o resurrection_n will_v satisfy_v man_n desire_n of_o immortality_n if_o they_o be_v right_o ground_v pag._n 108._o to_o it_o i_o say_v the_o return_n of_o soul_n into_o body_n once_o dead_a seems_z the_o rekindling_a of_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n by_o a_o act_n of_o divine_a power_n he_o confess_v that_o when_o body_n have_v be_v restore_v to_o life_n in_o this_o world_n as_o he_o here_o cite_v divers_a that_o there_o be_v no_o sense_n or_o apprehension_n in_o such_o soul_n return_v of_o the_o place_n or_o state_n they_o be_v in_o during_o their_o separation_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a forgetfulness_n of_o all_o that_o they_o see_v and_o feel_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n he_o give_v a_o reason_n for_o this_o both_o foreign_a to_o the_o purpose_n and_o weak_a but_o to_o i_o this_o seem_v a_o very_a likely_a proof_n that_o in_o such_o their_o separation_n they_o neither_o see_v nor_o feel_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o but_o that_o rather_o they_o be_v in_o death_n extinguishable_a and_o in_o life_n again_o rekindled_n from_o hence_o to_o page_n 117._o be_v all_o answer_v by_o the_o resurrection_n pag._n 117._o he_o say_v he_o can_v but_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v not_o imagine_v how_o there_o can_v be_v a_o resurrection_n without_o a_o soul_n once_o separate_v enter_v into_o the_o same_o body_n that_o die_v i_o say_v one_o shall_v be_v as_o much_o the_o same_o as_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v 1_o cor._n 15.37_o as_o wheat_n grow_v out_o of_o wheat_n sow_o so_o shall_v the_o body_n be_v with_o a_o flame_n of_o life_n kindle_v in_o it_o suitable_a to_o its_o power_n and_o to_o that_o flame_n which_o before_o be_v bear_v with_o it_o he_o say_v if_o it_o be_v so_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o old_a man_n can_v be_v put_v to_o the_o new_a man_n account_n i_o say_v they_o may_v just_o be_v so_o and_o the_o rise_a person_n be_v so_o much_o the_o same_o with_o the_o die_a person_n as_o to_o be_v accountable_a for_o his_o action_n viz._n effectual_o the_o same_o body_n member_n flame_n of_o life_n sense_n affection_n fancy_n understanding_n memory_n and_o judgement_n and_o shall_v so_o awake_v and_o rise_v as_o if_o he_o have_v fall_v asleep_o but_o a_o few_o hour_n before_o and_o his_o supposition_n be_v but_o the_o proper_a effect_n of_o his_o own_o mistake_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o soul_n for_o if_o that_o be_v true_a and_o the_o old_a soul_n do_v not_o subsist_v separately_z there_o must_v be_v another_o viz._n a_o new_a one_o be_v create_v but_o my_o sort_n of_o soul_n require_v no_o such_o thing_n pag._n 119._o say_v there_o be_v act_n perform_v by_o the_o soul_n whilst_o it_o be_v in_o the_o body_n in_o which_o it_o make_v no_o use_n at_o all_o of_o the_o body_n he_o instance_n in_o self-intuition_a and_o selfreflection_n i_o say_v these_o act_n can_v be_v do_v without_o the_o brain_n fancy_n and_o memory_n and_o for_o rapture_n they_o be_v but_o impression_n upon_o and_o revelation_n unto_o the_o common_a sense_n understanding_n or_o fancy_n record_v upon_o the_o memory_n also_o that_o fancy_n may_v be_v transport_v to_o thing_n without_o the_o body_n and_o the_o limit_n of_o reason_n yet_o act_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o proper_a organ_n without_o which_o the_o soul_n can_v act_v any_o thing_n life_n itself_o can_v be_v act_v but_o by_o the_o vital_a organ_n and_o yet_o without_o life_n there_o can_v be_v no_o apprehension_n self-intuition_a or_o reflection_n but_o all_o man_n thought_n perish_v pag_n 189._o cites_n heb._n 12.29_o we_o be_v come_v to_o angel_n and_o to_o god_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o and_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a and_o to_o jesus_n the_o mediator_n he_o bid_v we_o note_v these_o word_n they_o be_v not_o say_v he_o shall_v come_v after_o the_o resurrection_n or_o general_n judgement_n i_o say_v not_o after_o our_o death_n but_o intend_v we_o be_v come_v to_o they_o in_o faith_n and_o expectation_n to_o a_o doctrine_n which_o declare_v such_o thing_n to_o we_o and_o which_o we_o may_v believe_v and_o expect_v as_o sure_o as_o if_o we_o be_v now_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o they_o but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o come_v to_o they_o present_o after_o our_o death_n as_o he_o not_o only_a endeavour_n to_o insinuate_v but_o express_o affirm_v and_o pag._n 192._o he_o say_v these_o enjoyment_n will_v not_o be_v defer_v till_o the_o resurrection_n but_o
beast_n haunt_v towards_o house_n for_o relief_n among_o they_o be_v observe_v one_o who_o run_v sometime_o on_o two_o foot_n and_o otherwhiles_o on_o four_o the_o spectator_n take_v he_o for_o a_o satyr_n they_o set_v the_o haunt_v to_o take_v he_o and_o take_v he_o he_o be_v find_v a_o perfect_a man_n of_o wonderful_a quick_a sense_n especial_o in_o smell_a he_o learn_v again_o to_o speak_v and_o be_v know_v for_o the_o poor_a woman_n son_n and_o then_o relate_v his_o manner_n of_o live_v among_o the_o beast_n accept_v as_o one_o of_o their_o kind_n and_o so_o herd_v with_o they_o live_v as_o they_o do_v and_o the_o people_n name_v he_o john_n of_o liege_n and_o this_o fact_n discover_v a_o near_a degree_n of_o affinity_n between_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o so_o do_v the_o nourishment_n of_o humane_a body_n by_o the_o milk_n of_o beast_n and_o the_o support_v of_o humane_a body_n by_o the_o transfusion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o beast_n into_o their_o vein_n and_o body_n which_o show_v even_o a_o consanguinity_n among_o we_o our_o predecessor_n in_o this_o island_n in_o julius_n caesar_n time_n and_o a_o good_a while_n after_o live_v as_o naked_a as_o their_o cattle_n and_o feed_v among_o other_o thing_n upon_o wilding_n acorn_n bollis_n sloe_n hep_n haws_n etc._n etc._n as_o both_o beast_n and_o poor_a people_n divers_a time_n feed_v at_o this_o day_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o beast_n and_o man_n in_o puris_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la do_v not_o great_o differ_v in_o the_o last_o place_n shall_v be_v cite_v the_o case_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n who_o have_v for_o many_o year_n as_o high_a a_o place_n in_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n as_o any_o other_o man_n whatsoever_o and_o we_o may_v presume_v have_v indulge_v himself_o as_o man_n in_o such_o case_n and_o place_n use_v to_o do_v till_o by_o the_o operation_n it_o seem_v of_o his_o fancy_n his_o heart_n or_o inclination_n become_v like_o those_o of_o the_o beast_n he_o herd_v with_o the_o ox_n feed_v with_o they_o and_o live_v among_o they_o his_o skin_n be_v his_o only_a cover_v and_o be_v wet_a with_o the_o shower_n of_o heaven_n his_o hair_n grow_v to_o cover_v he_o like_o the_o bird_n feather_n and_o his_o nail_n like_o their_o claw_n and_o this_o be_v be_v well_o enough_o able_a to_o endure_v and_o it_o stand_v with_o his_o choice_n and_o like_n during_o such_o distemper_n of_o his_o fancy_n the_o space_n of_o seven_o year_n as_o a_o apprenticeship_n under_o discipline_n and_o it_o may_v serve_v for_o a_o example_n and_o proof_n that_o as_o man_n and_o beast_n be_v under_o the_o same_o genus_fw-la or_o kind_a of_o creature_n similar_v in_o their_o body_n as_o to_o the_o material_n and_o part_n of_o they_o so_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o exceed_o different_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o soul_n as_o the_o receive_a opinion_n have_v make_v they_o but_o more_o likely_a it_o seem_v that_o a_o soul_n of_o such_o nature_n as_o act_n in_o the_o brute_n first_o their_o vital_a faculty_n digestion_n nutrition_n generation_n second_o their_o passion_n of_o lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v three_o their_o sensitive_a faculty_n see_v hear_v etc._n etc._n four_o such_o low_a degree_n as_o they_o have_v of_o perception_n understanding_n fancy_n judgement_n will_n and_o memory_n such_o a_o soul_n as_o act_n these_o last_o faculty_n in_o a_o low_a degree_n and_o all_o the_o former_a in_o as_o high_a a_o degree_n as_o be_v do_v in_o man_n such_o a_o like_a soul_n shall_v be_v enough_o able_a to_o act_v in_o man_n all_o that_o his_o body_n and_o organ_n can_v perform_v and_o for_o which_o such_o organ_n be_v first_o intend_v and_o make_v but_o against_o this_o conclusion_n divers_a have_v object_v and_o say_v that_o man_n have_v one_o singular_a ornamental_a quality_n peculiar_a to_o his_o nature_n and_o so_o well_o fix_v to_o it_o as_o the_o same_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o it_o nor_o be_v communicate_v to_o any_o brutal_a nature_n whatsoever_o and_o that_o be_v a_o natural_a power_n of_o discern_v honestum_fw-la from_o turpe_fw-la and_o distinguish_v between_o they_o so_o as_o to_o approve_v the_o one_o and_o condemn_v the_o other_o to_o this_o i_o reply_v it_o seem_v reason_n do_v not_o drive_v man_n to_o consent_v to_o this_o assertion_n or_o to_o approve_v the_o import_n of_o it_o but_o they_o rejoin_a the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v prove_v rom._n 2.14_o those_o who_o have_v not_o the_o law_n do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n have_v the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n for_o a_o help_n to_o expound_v this_o text_n i_o quote_v another_o 1_o cor._n 11.14_o do_v not_o even_a nature_n itself_o teach_v you_o that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v long_a hair_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o he_o here_o by_o nature_n be_v intend_v a_o universal_a custom_n of_o those_o country_n which_o st._n paul_n have_v see_v for_o in_o they_o all_o man_n use_v to_o wear_v their_o hair_n short_a and_o that_o become_v among_o they_o a_o second_o nature_n as_o our_o proverb_n term_n it_o hence_o i_o collect_v for_o probable_a that_o in_o the_o quote_v text_n to_o the_o roman_n paul_n by_o the_o word_n nature_n intend_v a_o civilise_v and_o cultivate_v nature_n meliorate_v by_o some_o kind_n of_o education_n or_o institution_n as_o all_o the_o nation_n that_o he_o know_v be_v for_o his_o word_n have_v not_o the_o law_n point_n at_o that_o of_o moses_n and_o he_o seem_v to_o account_v that_o all_o who_o be_v not_o under_o that_o law_n be_v under_o nature_n and_o the_o guidance_n of_o it_o but_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o have_v the_o cultivation_n of_o other_o law_n or_o rule_n and_o which_o general_o be_v much_o agreeaable_a to_o the_o letter_n or_o sense_n of_o moses_n his_o moral_a law_n and_o make_v like_o impression_n upon_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o that_o of_o moses_n do_v upon_o the_o jew_n but_o that_o here_o by_o nature_n he_o do_v not_o intend_v humane_a nature_n in_o puris_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la naked_a and_o bare_a of_o all_o manner_n of_o institution_n or_o education_n whatsoever_o not_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o that_o of_o john_n of_o liege_n the_o lybian_a jamnite_n and_o sabunk_n where_o man_n be_v so_o few_o as_o their_o converse_n among_o the_o more_o numerous_a beast_n make_v they_o like_o one_o another_o not_o like_o the_o caribbee_n islander_n or_o the_o most_o northern_o american_n or_o some_o miserable_a poor_a wild_a irish_a have_v be_v report_v it_o seem_v he_o do_v not_o intend_v nature_n thus_o naked_a but_o under_o the_o cultivation_n of_o some_o civil_a education_n now_o for_o man_n natural_a faculty_n of_o discern_v honestum_fw-la from_o turpe_fw-la i_o say_v first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o his_o nature_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o natural_a faculty_n his_o vital_a passionate_a sensitive_a or_o rational_a power_n for_o all_o these_o of_o which_o the_o beast_n be_v also_o partaker_n rise_v out_o of_o bare_a nature_n or_o the_o natural_a contexture_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o exert_v themselves_o upon_o emergent_a occasion_n without_o any_o teach_v or_o instruction_n whatsoever_o this_o power_n of_o discern_v honestum_fw-la from_o turpe_fw-la do_v not_o so_o adam_n do_v not_o by_o nature_n discern_v that_o nakedness_n be_v a_o undecent_a thing_n or_o turpe_fw-la who_o tell_v thou_o that_o thou_o be_v naked_a discover_v to_o thou_o that_o nakedness_n be_v a_o indecency_n in_o thou_o or_o that_o thou_o have_v need_v of_o any_o cover_v but_o thy_o skin_n rom._n 7.7_o i_o have_v not_o know_v sin_n or_o what_o action_n be_v sin_n but_o by_o the_o law_n ver._n 8._o without_o the_o law_n sin_n be_v dead_a seem_v unperceived_a chap._n 5.13_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v when_o there_o be_v no_o law_n these_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o rule_n to_o discern_v honestum_fw-la from_o turpe_fw-la even_o in_o the_o most_o gross_a action_n for_o rom._n 4.15_o where_o no_o law_n be_v there_o be_v no_o transgression_n let_v we_o try_v this_o by_o a_o case_n of_o shed_v man_n blood_n viz._n two_o man_n in_o pure_a state_n of_o nature_n or_o savage_n happen_v to_o meet_v at_o large_a and_o to_o have_v view_n of_o a_o object_n which_o they_o both_o desire_n they_o can_v dispute_v for_o want_v of_o language_n but_o both_o seize_v the_o object_n and_o fall_v to_o the_o brutal_a way_n of_o contend_v viz._n violence_n and_o force_n and_o in_o the_o contest_v one_o kill_v the_o other_o it_o seem_v the_o killer_n instead_o of_o remorse_n shall_v glory_v in_o this_o achievement_n and_o be_v more_o encourage_v and_o ready_a to_o follow_v the_o same_o course_n another_o time_n and_o what_o otherwise_o do_v our_o practise_a duelist_n but_o glory_n in_o their_o shame_n with_o apparent_a disadvantage_n act_v against_o the_o law_n both_o of_o god_n
go_v sudden_o away_o in_o a_o fright_n 5._o whether_o the_o soul_n have_v a_o peculiar_a place_n of_o residence_n in_o the_o body_n and_o where_o that_o be_v and_o if_o that_o part_n be_v ill_o affect_v and_o unfit_a for_o she_o can_v she_o change_v it_o and_o go_v to_o reside_v in_o another_o or_o whether_o be_v there_o more_o place_n or_o another_o place_n in_o the_o body_n that_o can_v be_v fit_a or_o can_v make_v room_n for_o she_o to_o reside_v and_o act_v in_o or_o that_o she_o be_v tota_n in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la 6._o how_o do_v she_o act_n can_v she_o do_v any_o thing_n by_o herself_o or_o her_o own_o peculiar_a power_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o animal_n spirit_n and_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n can_v she_o amend_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v amiss_o in_o the_o body_n or_o know_v any_o thing_n without_o such_o ministry_n of_o the_o sense_n by_o what_o force_n do_v she_o move_v the_o bodily_a spirit_n or_o can_v she_o inflict_v pain_n or_o punishment_n for_o their_o disobedience_n can_v she_o govern_v the_o passion_n by_o a_o absolute_a sway_n or_o how_o far_o can_v she_o do_v it_o and_o by_o what_o mean_n and_o so_o for_o the_o affection_n and_o whether_o be_v not_o she_o rather_o subject_v often_o to_o their_o power_n and_o how_o far_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v that_o come_v to_o pass_v how_o or_o by_o what_o mean_n and_o way_n do_v she_o imagine_v judge_n understand_v or_o remember_v or_o can_v any_o better_a or_o more_o inteliligible_a account_n be_v give_v that_o she_o do_v and_o how_o she_o do_v such_o thing_n then_o how_o the_o spirit_n brain_n and_o other_o organical_a part_n of_o the_o body_n do_v they_o actuate_v thereto_o by_o the_o impulse_n of_o nature_n and_o that_o flammula_fw-la vitalis_n which_o pervade_v every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o most_o powerful_o operate_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o head_n stimulate_v and_o stir_v they_o in_o and_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o duty_n and_o power_n entrust_v to_o they_o and_o impose_v or_o imprint_v upon_o they_o by_o nature_n and_o the_o contriver_n who_o make_v they_o for_o such_o purpose_n and_o have_v appoint_v their_o employment_n and_o the_o order_n and_o power_n by_o which_o it_o seem_v they_o may_v be_v and_o be_v continual_o easy_o and_o natural_o perform_v when_o the_o introducer_n and_o maintainer_n of_o a_o spiritual_a self-subsisting_a soul_n in_o man_n have_v open_v their_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n so_o large_o as_o to_o satisfy_v the_o curious_a inquirer_n concern_v these_o and_o the_o like_a particular_a query_n they_o may_v then_o with_o better_a confidence_n deny_v the_o possibillity_n of_o the_o animal_n spirit_n blood_n and_o organical_a part_n of_o the_o body_n their_o perform_v such_o action_n and_o produce_v such_o effect_n as_o be_v daily_o do_v by_o we_o and_o be_v continual_o visible_a among_o we_o and_o thence_o derive_v their_o pretentended_a necessity_n of_o introduce_v within_o upon_z and_o over_o we_o such_o a_o foreign_a commander_n and_o government_n as_o that_o of_o a_o perfect_a substantial_a immortal_a and_o self_n subsist_v spirit_n but_o withal_o we_o must_v desire_v they_o to_o declare_v why_o they_o do_v allow_v the_o boisterous_a affection_n and_o passion_n in_o man_n viz._n his_o ambition_n covetousness_n lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v to_o be_v ungovernable_a by_o this_o imperial_a spiritual_a power_n set_v over_o man_n and_o his_o action_n but_o that_o such_o riotous_a actor_n will_v oppose_v and_o over-rule_v this_o spiritual_a power_n and_o hurry_v this_o precious_a soul_n and_o potent_a governor_n whether_o she_o will_v or_o not_o into_o very_o bad_a and_o wicked_a action_n such_o as_o herself_o do_v not_o only_o resist_v and_o condemn_v but_o even_o detest_v and_o abhor_v these_o affection_n and_o passion_n our_o spirit-imposers_a do_v common_o grant_v have_v their_o rise_n and_o growth_n from_o the_o animal_n spirit_n propensity_n and_o part_n of_o the_o body_n but_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o set_v forth_o any_o more_o rational_a account_n of_o the_o manner_n how_o or_o the_o power_n by_o which_o such_o effect_n be_v perform_v or_o produce_v than_o they_o say_v can_v be_v do_v for_o those_o of_o the_o sense_n phantasie_n intellect_n or_o memory_n they_o ascribe_v indeed_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o head_n and_o brain_n to_o the_o spiritual_a power_n and_o government_n and_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n they_o place_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o suffer_v their_o product_n and_o power_n to_o remain_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o they_o show_v we_o no_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n nor_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o by_o what_o medium_n flesh_n blood_n spirit_n and_o animal_n part_n do_v or_o can_v produce_v one_o sort_n of_o these_o faculty_n in_o man_n and_o not_o the_o other_o it_o be_v true_a that_o after_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o live_a spirit_n enliven_a and_o rule_v in_o man_n be_v admit_v and_o take_v for_o true_a we_o do_v then_o easy_o conceive_v and_o believe_v the_o faculty_n of_o the_o brain_n be_v more_o suitable_a to_o that_o nature_n and_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n which_o sure_o not_o therewithal_o but_o be_v apt_a to_o resist_v and_o over-rule_v that_o government_n man_n do_v forward_o ascribe_v to_o the_o production_n actuate_a and_o government_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o perhaps_o more_o right_o to_o the_o same_o flame_n and_o animal_n spirit_n which_o act_n also_o in_o the_o head_n but_o more_o refine_a there_o and_o meet_v with_o fit_a matter_n and_o organ_n adapt_v intend_v by_o the_o artificer_n and_o by_o he_o appoint_v for_o more_o noble_a purpose_n and_o our_o experience_n tell_v we_o that_o blood_n which_o produce_v bark_v in_o a_o dog_n will_v by_o transfusion_n cause_n baa_v in_o a_o sheep_n and_o likely_a bleat_v in_o a_o calf_n grunt_v in_o a_o hog_n and_o so_o will_v the_o sheep_n blood_n by_o transfusion_n produce_v speak_v and_o sing_v in_o a_o man_n according_a to_o the_o matter_n and_o organ_n which_o the_o spirit_n arise_v from_o that_o blood_n find_v in_o the_o place_n adapt_v for_o such_o production_n this_o far_a piece_n of_o work_n be_v cut_v out_o for_o our_o spirit-imposers_a it_o shall_v here_o be_v leave_v upon_o they_o to_o perform_v before_o they_o be_v permit_v as_o a_o reasonable_a course_n to_o go_v on_o in_o their_o pretence_n that_o because_o man_n be_v not_o able_a so_o full_o to_o understand_v the_o course_n of_o natural_a proceed_n in_o the_o head_n and_o brain_n as_o to_o give_v a_o rational_a and_o satisfactory_a account_n thereof_o that_o therefore_o thing_n can_v be_v do_v there_o as_o they_o be_v without_o such_o a_o spiritual_a power_n as_o man_n have_v invent_v to_o substitute_n rather_o than_o confess_v in_o this_o case_n the_o truth_n of_o their_o ignorance_n and_o that_o god_n work_n be_v in_o this_o case_n particular_o past_o find_v out_o but_o if_o they_o shall_v give_v we_o as_o rational_a and_o satisfactory_a a_o account_n of_o the_o thing_n concern_v the_o soul_n they_o speak_v of_o as_o they_o require_v other_o man_n to_o give_v of_o the_o act_n perform_v in_o the_o head_n by_o the_o brain_n and_o the_o membrane_n artery_n and_o other_o part_n to_o the_o same_o belong_v and_o continual_o supply_v by_o animal_n and_o subtle_a spirit_n from_o the_o heart_n and_o quicken_v and_o act_v by_o the_o flammula_fw-la vitalis_n nay_o except_o they_o do_v give_v a_o better_a account_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o its_o power_n and_o manner_n of_o act_v than_o man_n can_v do_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o act_v in_o the_o head_n and_o brain_n by_o the_o animal_n spirit_n and_o other_o natural_a part_n and_o power_n of_o the_o body_n it_o seem_v they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v or_o admit_v to_o impose_v upon-man_n their_o doctrine_n of_o a_o spiritual_a and_o self-subsisting_a soul_n as_o a_o distinct_a be_v from_o that_o of_o the_o body_n and_o it_o seem_v they_o may_v as_o well_o devise_v soul_n for_o the_o beast_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n viz._n for_o that_o they_o can_v give_v a_o rational_a or_o satisfactory_a account_n how_o and_o by_o what_o particular_a mean_n and_o power_n many_o of_o their_o action_n be_v frame_v guide_v and_o perform_v as_o how_o they_o come_v every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o know_v wherein_o their_o prime_a force_n of_o oppose_v other_o and_o defend_v themselves_o do_v consist_v the_o dog_n in_o his_o tooth_n the_o beast_n sheep_n goat_n deer_n in_o their_o horn_n the_o boar_n in_o his_o tusk_n cock_n in_o their_o bill_n and_o spur_n porcupine_n in_o their_o quill_n and_o the_o like_a and_o how_o every_o species_n be_v teach_v and_o guide_v to_o use_v their_o several_a weapon_n the_o most_o dexterous_o and_o most_o to_o their_o advantage_n by_o what_o power_n order_n or_o mean_n the_o subtlety_n of_o
be_v attain_v unto_o but_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o attain_v it_o be_v by_o search_v into_o all_o or_o the_o most_o of_o the_o accident_n unto_o the_o same_o belong_v and_o so_o search_v we_o know_v not_o how_o to_o find_v any_o affection_n or_o accident_n a_o soul_n have_v that_o be_v proper_a or_o peculiar_a to_o herself_o common_o we_o find_v she_o neither_o do_v nor_o suffer_v any_o thing_n without_o copartnership_n of_o the_o body_n the_o intellect_n seem_v she_o most_o peculiar_a and_o yet_o if_o that_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o fantasy_n or_o can_v be_v perform_v without_o the_o fancy_n certain_o it_o can_v be_v act_v without_o the_o body_n neither_o hence_o he_o collect_v and_o assert_n that_o if_o in_o the_o soul_n there_o be_v any_o operation_n or_o affection_n which_o be_v proper_o peculiar_a to_o its_o self_n viz._n it_o be_v own_o nature_n it_o may_v then_o be_v reasonable_o take_v to_o have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n disjoin_v from_o the_o body_n but_o if_o it_o have_v no_o operation_n or_o affection_n so_o peculiar_o proper_a to_o its_o own_o nature_n then_o be_v it_o not_o capable_a of_o subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n also_o that_o which_o be_v never_o find_v or_o perceive_v without_o a_o body_n may_v well_o pass_v for_o inseparable_a from_o a_o body_n also_o in_o all_o our_o affection_n the_o body_n join_v and_o operate_v with_o the_o soul_n for_o if_o they_o be_v total_o or_o principal_o from_o the_o soul_n they_o will_v act_v in_o a_o like_a manner_n upon_o all_o like_a or_o equal_a occasion_n but_o we_o find_v that_o man_n will_v sometime_o bear_v very_o great_a provocation_n or_o appearance_n of_o great_a danger_n without_o any_o great_a emotion_n of_o anger_n or_o fear_n and_o at_o another_o time_n they_o be_v apt_a to_o fear_v upon_o far_o less_o occasion_n and_o to_o be_v wrathful_a and_o angry_a according_o this_o show_v the_o humour_n of_o the_o body_n have_v a_o great_a share_n and_o power_n in_o produce_v these_o affection_n and_o that_o they_o be_v rationes_fw-la materiales_fw-la effect_n of_o a_o material_a soul_n of_o which_o man_n say_v dispositio_fw-la animae_fw-la sequitur_fw-la temperamentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la nam_fw-la ratio_fw-la est_fw-la forma_fw-la rei_fw-la conclude_v upon_o the_o question_n that_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o animal_n be_v inseparable_a from_o the_o natural_a matter_n and_o composure_n of_o it_o this_o be_v a_o summary_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o aristotle_n book_n he_o question_n as_o solomon_n have_v do_v before_o he_o whether_o soul_n do_v subsist_v in_o separation_n from_o their_o body_n or_o not_o and_o argue_v if_o they_o have_v proper_a operation_n or_o accident_n of_o their_o own_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o do_v subsist_v so_o and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o such_o than_o they_o do_v not_o so_o subsist_v for_o natura_fw-la nihil_fw-la facit_fw-la frustra_fw-la and_o if_o they_o neither_o have_v action_n nor_o passion_n proper_o belong_v to_o they_o their_o subsistence_n will_v be_v frustra_fw-la and_o therefore_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o admit_v or_o allow_v of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n unless_o we_o can_v prove_v they_o have_v some_o operation_n affection_n or_o accident_n so_o proper_o belong_v to_o they_o as_o that_o they_o be_v certain_o know_v to_o exercise_v or_o use_v they_o without_o any_o assistance_n of_o body_n or_o matter_n we_o have_v before_o quote_v our_o doctor_n pag._n 227._o to_o this_o point_n say_v the_o soul_n be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o herself_o to_o act_v without_o the_o animal_n spirit_n and_o p._n 298._o these_o be_v the_o immediate_a instrument_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o which_o she_o see_v hear_v feel_v imagine_v remember_v reason_n and_o move_v the_o member_n and_o the_o body_n and_o if_o they_o be_v spend_v she_o can_v act_v no_o more_o but_o neither_o aristotle_n nor_o the_o doctor_n here_o find_v any_o proper_o peculiar_a operation_n or_o accident_n of_o the_o soul_n aristotle_n say_v indeed_o that_o intelligere_fw-la be_v the_o most_o so_o of_o any_o thing_n videtur_fw-la to_o be_v the_o most_o so_o of_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o he_o be_v not_o convince_v that_o intelligere_fw-la be_v so_o proper_a to_o the_o soul_n as_o can_v give_v title_n to_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n nor_o do_v he_o absolute_o conclude_v to_o the_o contrary_a but_o have_v leave_v we_o in_o the_o open_a road_n towards_o it_o and_o with_o fair_a and_o forcible_a reason_n so_o to_o do_v this_o way_n of_o quote_v aristotle_n book_n seem_v like_o that_o of_o the_o israelite_n when_o they_o compass_v the_o land_n of_o edom_n their_o soul_n be_v discourage_v with_o the_o prospect_n and_o contemplation_n of_o the_o length_n of_o it_o but_o as_o we_o find_v weariness_n grow_v upon_o we_o long_o stride_v or_o skip_v may_v happen_v to_o be_v make_v before_o the_o finish_n of_o so_o venturous_a a_o undertake_n cap._n 2._o aristotle_n proceed_v in_o his_o history_n cite_v to_o we_o all_o the_o opinion_n that_o he_o know_v to_o be_v deliver_v concern_v the_o soul_n by_o eminent_a grecian_a philosopher_n before_o his_o time_n first_o he_o state_n the_o special_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o animata_fw-la and_o inanimata_fw-la or_o the_o animal_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o so_o to_o lie_v in_o motion_n and_o sense_n all_o animal_n have_v those_o two_o thing_n and_o none_o but_o animal_n have_v they_o and_o that_o motion_n be_v the_o prior_n and_o superior_a faculty_n therefore_o the_o first_o observer_n begin_v from_o thence_o believe_v that_o which_o can_v not_o move_v itself_o can_v not_o move_v another_o thing_n whence_o democritus_n collect_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o certain_a degree_n of_o heat_n or_o fire_n which_o he_o take_v to_o be_v kindle_v and_o maintain_v in_o the_o body_n by_o such_o atom_n fly_v about_o in_o the_o air_n as_o be_v of_o a_o globular_a figure_n which_o he_o take_v to_o be_v of_o a_o fiery_a nature_n such_o they_o observe_v to_o be_v in_o the_o air_n never_o rest_v but_o always_o in_o motion_n though_o the_o wind_n and_o air_n be_v never_o so_o calm_a and_o quiet_a these_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n with_o the_o breath_n act_v in_o it_o and_o act_v it_o every_o breathe_a supply_a fresh_a atom_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n continue_v life_n and_o motion_n in_o the_o body_n but_o on_o stoppage_n or_o failure_n of_o breath_n the_o animal_n die_v for_o want_v of_o fresh_a atom_n to_o heat_n move_v and_o actuate_v the_o same_o man_n be_v put_v to_o it_o for_o the_o find_v a_o way_n to_o kindle_v this_o fire_n in_o the_o animal_n body_n for_o want_v of_o moses_n history_n and_o take_v the_o promethean_a or_o heavenly_a fire_n but_o for_o a_o fable_n with_o democritus_n opinion_n leucippus_n also_o agree_v the_o pythagorean_n school_n some_o say_v the_o soul_n be_v of_o these_o atom_n other_o it_o be_v of_o that_o which_o move_v these_o atom_n and_o divers_a more_o hold_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o active_a principle_n which_o first_o move_v itself_o and_o then_o act_v every_o thing_n about_o it_o for_o nothing_o can_v move_v another_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o first_o move_v itself_o anaxagorus_n be_v of_o the_o like_a opinion_n and_o so_o be_v all_o they_o who_o have_v principal_a respect_n to_o the_o motion_n of_o animal_n but_o other_o philosopher_n there_o be_v who_o principal_o respect_v the_o sensitive_a and_o scientifical_a performance_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o they_o conceive_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o compositum_fw-la or_o temperament_n of_o the_o element_n and_o of_o this_o opinion_n be_v empedocles_n and_o plato_n in_o his_o timaeo_n this_o compositum_fw-la they_o draw_v out_o into_o four_o principle_n after_o a_o mathematical_a pattern_n the_o first_o as_o a_o single_a unite_n or_o point_v and_o this_o they_o say_v be_v the_o intellect_n then_o they_o draw_v out_o a_o line_n terminate_v by_o two_o unite_v and_o that_o they_o call_v the_o number_n two_o and_o this_o they_o say_v be_v science_n of_o line_n they_o produce_v a_o planum_fw-la and_o that_o they_o say_v be_v opinion_n and_o thence_o they_o found_v and_o make_v a_o solid_a body_n and_o this_o they_o say_v be_v the_o sense_n or_o sensitive_a power_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v judge_v and_o terminate_v part_n by_o the_o intellect_n part_n by_o science_n part_n by_o opinion_n and_o part_n by_o sense_n and_o have_v reduce_v the_o self-moving_a soul_n to_o number_n they_o give_v it_o the_o term_n of_o a_o self-moving_a number_n but_o those_o who_o compound_v it_o of_o the_o element_n make_v fire_n principal_a in_o that_o composition_n it_o consist_v of_o the_o most_o subtle_a and_o incorporeal_a part_n prompt_v to_o and_o in_o motion_n and_o a_o prime_a mover_n of_o other_o thing_n diogenes_n think_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v air_n as_o the_o most_o
by_o this_o harmony_n explicate_v the_o affection_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o soul_n 2._o this_o harmony_n be_v neither_o a_o mixture_n of_o ingredient_n or_o a_o composition_n of_o part_n or_o member_n in_o the_o body_n as_o all_o other_o proportion_n be_v in_o their_o kind_n and_o therefore_o not_o proper_o harmony_n they_o give_v the_o amicableness_n of_o the_o ingredient_n a_o part_n in_o this_o work_n of_o operation_n by_o harmony_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n or_o one_o different_a from_o it_o they_o do_v not_o declare_v nor_o do_v empedocles_n their_o author_n discover_v now_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o this_o reasonable_a proportion_n and_o temperature_n of_o the_o mixture_n in_o body_n why_o do_v it_o appear_v to_o be_v take_v away_o together_o with_o the_o body_n and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o perish_v at_o the_o soul_n departure_n if_o this_o sort_n of_o harmony_n be_v not_o the_o soul_n yet_o conclude_v it_o be_v not_o the_o soul_n the_o soul_n may_v be_v move_v by_o accident_n and_o can_v move_v itself_o so_o viz._n by_o move_v the_o body_n but_o a_o local_a motion_n the_o soul_n of_o itself_o have_v not_o this_o of_o local_a motion_n must_v be_v intend_v whilst_o in_o the_o body_n or_o be_v full_o contradict_v by_o our_o doctor_n pag._n 266._o and_o so_o to_o 296._o and_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o aristotle_n seem_v to_o bear_v much_o with_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o harmony_n though_o he_o do_v not_o allow_v of_o it_o and_o though_o it_o fall_v short_a of_o the_o truth_n yet_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o good_a share_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o it_o chap._n 5._o because_o that_o to_o rejoice_v grieve_v or_o discourse_n be_v motion_n and_o man_n use_v to_o say_v the_o soul_n rejoice_v be_v grieve_v or_o do_v ruminate_v or_o study_v it_o therefore_o be_v so_o move_v one_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o soul_n hew_v timber_n or_o weave_v nor_o be_v it_o proper_a to_o say_v the_o soul_n learn_v or_o reason_n in_o discourse_n but_o that_o the_o man_n do_v so_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o soul_n not_o that_o the_o motion_n be_v in_o the_o soul_n but_o in_o some_o case_n it_o come_v to_o she_o as_o in_o use_v the_o sense_n and_o in_o some_o come_v from_o she_o as_o in_o use_v the_o memory_n and_o so_o for_o the_o intellect_n which_o have_v a_o near_a relation_n to_o she_o than_o the_o memory_n also_o be_v a_o tear_v substantial_a faculty_n and_o be_v less_o decay_a or_o subject_a to_o be_v spoil_v the_o decay_n of_o age_n do_v not_o reach_v or_o spoil_v it_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o do_v the_o sense_n memory_n or_o other_o faculty_n the_o soul_n suffer_v not_o by_o age_n but_o the_o body_n wherein_o she_o be_v as_o in_o case_n of_o drink_n or_o sickness_n intellect_n and_o contemplation_n will_v fail_v also_o with_o the_o bodily_a material_n fail_v but_o the_o soul_n herself_o be_v impassable_a and_o if_o a_o old_a man_n shall_v obtain_v a_o young_a eye_n he_o will_v be_v able_a to_o see_v as_o well_o as_o if_o he_o be_v young_a to_o love_n hate_n or_o remember_v be_v not_o work_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o of_o he_o that_o have_v it_o and_o they_o be_v quality_n and_o power_n common_a to_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o perish_v with_o the_o dissolution_n perhaps_o the_o intellect_n may_v be_v a_o more_o divine_a thing_n and_o impassable_a final_o the_o soul_n can_v neither_o be_v move_v nor_o move_v herself_o but_o by_o accident_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o where_o aristotle_n say_v the_o intellect_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o substance_n i_o render_v it_o a_o substantial_a faculty_n more_o so_o than_o the_o memory_n it_o seem_v intend_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n that_o intellect_n do_v also_o fail_v man_n in_o their_o age_n but_o not_o so_o early_o as_o memory_n and_o so_o experience_n confirm_v to_o we_o for_o he_o perhaps_o the_o intellect_n here_o intend_v soul_n but_o not_o so_o before_o perhaps_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a thing_n and_o impassable_a we_o say_v that_o what_o perhaps_o may_v be_v perhaps_o may_v not_o be_v and_o compare_v it_o with_o solomon_n who_o know_v it_o be_v leave_v by_o both_o as_o a_o uncertain_a thing_n and_o we_o be_v leave_v to_o seek_v for_o a_o firm_a fixation_n of_o what_o they_o in_o these_o place_n have_v not_o determine_v chap._n 6._o aristotle_n reject_v their_o opinion_n who_o think_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o number_n which_o have_v power_n to_o move_v itself_o and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o impassable_a tenet_n his_o argument_n seem_v plain_a and_o therefore_o need_v not_o be_v repeat_v but_o we_o remark_n or_o observe_v that_o he_o say_v plant_n and_o animal_n seem_v to_o be_v endow_v with_o the_o same_o soul_n spirit_n or_o specifical_a soul_n also_o whether_o you_o call_v democritus_n his_o round_a atom_n unity_n or_o minute_a point_n they_o will_v create_v that_o which_o be_v quantum_fw-la and_o then_o there_o will_v be_v something_o that_o move_v and_o something_o that_o be_v move_v as_o there_o must_v be_v in_o all_o magnitude_n though_o never_o so_o small_a and_o every_o unity_n must_v have_v its_o motor_n so_o it_o can_v be_v anima_fw-la for_o that_o be_v motor_n and_o be_v not_o move_v but_o by_o accident_n they_o who_o call_v the_o soul_n number_n be_v like_o they_o who_o call_v it_o a_o sort_n of_o a_o subtle_a body_n consist_v of_o part_n of_o a_o like_a nature_n but_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v over_o or_o in_o all_o the_o sentient_a body_n universal_o and_o that_o which_o enlivens_fw-la it_z here_o will_v be_v two_o body_n one_o within_o another_o observe_v we_o may_v concern_v this_o subtle_a part_n which_o he_o call_v a_o sort_n of_o a_o body_n it_o may_v intend_v the_o immaterial_a spirit_n before_o explicate_v and_o then_o the_o have_v one_o such_o body_n within_o another_o dense_n body_n be_v but_o a_o exception_n to_o the_o wording_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o do_v not_o reach_v to_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o matter_n intend_v chap._n 7._o mention_n three_o definition_n of_o the_o soul_n first_o that_o be_v id_fw-la quod_fw-la maxim_n vim_o habet_fw-la movendi_fw-la and_o therefore_o be_v a_o self-motor_n second_o that_o it_o be_v a_o body_n consist_v of_o the_o most_o subtle_a part_n and_o more_o incorporeal_a than_o any_o other_o body_n or_o thing_n these_o two_o be_v past_a the_o three_o be_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o compositum_fw-la of_o the_o element_n and_o which_o therefore_o can_v perceive_v and_o know_v they_o and_o all_o that_o be_v make_v of_o they_o this_o knowledge_n say_v aristotle_n can_v rise_v from_o the_o composition_n of_o element_n in_o the_o soul_n unless_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o composition_n in_o thing_n and_o their_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o compound_v be_v also_o in_o the_o soul_n but_o not_o compound_v substance_n can_v be_v in_o the_o soul_n nor_o quantity_n quality_n or_o other_o accident_n empedocles_n think_v the_o element_n with_o their_o concord_n and_o discord_n compose_v not_o only_o the_o humane_a soul_n but_o that_o they_o and_o their_o concord_n make_v up_o the_o divine_a intellect_n exclude_v discord_n whence_o say_v aristotle_n god_n know_v less_o than_o man_n but_o the_o element_n say_v he_o be_v material_a and_o that_o which_o by_o compound_v they_o make_v the_o soul_n must_v be_v of_o more_o value_n than_o the_o soul_n and_o what_o thing_n can_v that_o be_v impossible_a it_o be_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o thing_n more_o excellent_a than_o the_o soul_n or_o superior_a to_o it_o especial_o to_o its_o prime_a faculty_n the_o intellect_n for_o most_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o this_o high_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v account_v of_o the_o great_a antiquity_n and_o the_o high_a dominion_n or_o power_n according_a to_o nature_n no_o say_v empedocles_n for_o the_o element_n be_v the_o first_o of_o being_n and_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o from_o the_o element_n she_o can_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o and_o here_o aristotle_n let_v this_o dispute_n fall_v and_o say_v no_o more_o to_o any_o purpose_n in_o this_o chapter_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o aristotle_n repeat_v here_o again_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n consist_v of_o material_a but_o most_o subtle_a part_n more_o incorporeal_a or_o spiritual_a than_o any_o other_o material_a thing_n he_o give_v no_o other_o answer_n to_o this_o before_o but_o by_o his_o clinch_n that_o this_o will_v be_v to_o conceit_n two_o body_n one_o within_o another_o to_o this_o may_v be_v say_v one_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n or_o a_o celestial_a spirit_n kindle_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n but_o withdraw_v its_o pabulum_fw-la some_o few_o day_n or_o stop_v the_o fanning_n air_n from_o it_o but_o for_o some_o few_o minute_n this_o flame_v spirit_n be_v certain_o extingush_v this_o
but_o not_o so_o well_o vehement_a excessive_a object_n of_o other_o sense_n do_v only_o destroy_v the_o present_a act_n or_o at_o most_o but_o the_o organ_n but_o such_o object_n of_o the_o touch_n may_v kill_v as_o vehement_a heat_n cold_a hardship_n smell_v or_o taste_n can_v also_o kill_v but_o that_o come_v from_o their_o touch_v and_o such_o power_n as_o a_o aspect_n may_v have_v to_o that_o purpose_n be_v by_o power_n of_o what_o touch_v prov._n 2.4_o solomon_n direct_v seek_v knowledge_n and_o truth_n as_o silver_n and_o search_v for_o they_o as_o for_o hide_a treasure_n and_o thus_o have_v we_o ransack_v the_o treasure_n of_o this_o philosophical_a treatise_n and_o storehouse_n the_o best_a furnish_v towards_o the_o present_a purpose_n of_o any_o magazine_n which_o by_o art_n or_o nature_n we_o know_v to_o have_v be_v collect_v there_o have_v no_o part_n of_o it_o be_v leave_v without_o our_o close_a scrutiny_n by_o which_o we_o seem_v to_o have_v find_v that_o the_o philosopher_n have_v make_v a_o like_a search_n to_o this_o very_a purpose_n in_o the_o time_n age_n and_o write_n of_o those_o who_o have_v live_v before_o he_o and_o by_o such_o search_n have_v find_v that_o orpheus_n and_o thales_n hold_v opinion_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v animatum_fw-la and_o that_o there_o be_v in_o it_o a_o universal_a soul_n from_o whence_o the_o particular_a soul_n be_v send_v out_o to_o animate_v and_o inform_v all_o that_o be_v in_o capacity_n to_o receive_v both_o the_o vegetative_a sensitive_a and_o rational_a upon_o who_o future_a dissolution_n the_o form_n soul_n virtue_n or_o active_a principle_n return_v back_o to_o the_o universal_a soul_n or_o spirit_n or_o power_n and_o mix_v therewithal_o as_o the_o drop_n of_o water_n return_v be_v receive_v and_o incorporate_v into_o their_o ocean_n or_o element_n and_o if_o this_o be_v true_a there_o must_v thence_o follow_v a_o subsistence_n of_o soul_n after_o dissolution_n of_o the_o inspirited_a body_n but_o not_o in_o their_o individuation_n or_o particular_n next_o come_v pythagoras_n and_o he_o teach_v a_o individuation_n of_o soul_n that_o every_o animal_n have_v its_o particular_a form_n or_o soul_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mode_n and_o transmigrate_v sometime_o into_o man_n and_o sometime_o into_o beast_n according_a to_o their_o desert_n or_o as_o it_o happen_v or_o there_o be_v need_n in_o the_o world_n this_o opinion_n maintain_v and_o require_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n of_o the_o body_n and_o that_o in_o every_o particular_a or_o in_o their_o proper_a individuation_n and_o necessary_o suppose_v a_o pre-existence_n of_o soul_n and_o there_o must_v be_v a_o great_a stock_n magazine_n or_o provision_n of_o soul_n whence_o all_o who_o have_v need_v may_v abundant_o be_v supply_v likewise_o it_o suppose_v a_o immortality_n in_o the_o soul_n or_o else_o in_o length_n of_o time_n they_o may_v come_v to_o be_v clean_o spend_v and_o wear_v out_o then_o come_v democritus_n and_o he_o and_o leucippus_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n for_o they_o think_v that_o upon_o the_o aptitude_n and_o fitness_n of_o the_o body_n for_o the_o receipt_n of_o a_o soul_n the_o vital_a heat_n require_v and_o obtain_v a_o respiration_n and_o therewithal_o the_o globular_a or_o fiery_a atom_n which_o fly_v about_o in_o the_o air_n be_v draw_v in_o at_o each_o breathe_v and_o they_o give_v continual_a supply_n to_o such_o atom_n as_o be_v in_o the_o body_n before_o so_o long_o therefore_o as_o animal_n breath_n and_o draw_v in_o such_o atom_n they_o may_v live_v but_o no_o long_o for_o want_v of_o fresh_a atom_n or_o fire_n for_o a_o continual_a supply_n of_o their_o soul_n this_o opinion_n make_v a_o soul_n create_v by_o the_o congregate_a of_o globular_a atom_n not_o capable_a of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n as_o a_o soul_n but_o be_v again_o dissolve_v into_o its_o atom_n upon_o death_n of_o the_o body_n then_o the_o philosopher_n who_o more_o regard_v rational_a and_o know_v faculty_n in_o the_o soul_n than_o its_o vital_a and_o move_a one_o such_o as_o empedocles_n and_o plato_n they_o think_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o compositum_fw-la of_o the_o element_n among_o which_o fire_n be_v most_o eminent_a and_o potent_a that_o all_o be_v wrought_v into_o a_o amicable_a inclination_n and_o mix_v in_o a_o suitable_a proportion_n there_o rise_v from_o that_o mixture_n a_o spiritual_a flame_n which_o they_o call_v a_o harmony_n of_o they_o all_o during_o who_o continuance_n the_o animal_n live_v and_o have_v vigour_n in_o a_o like_a proportion_n but_o in_o death_n it_o cease_v and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o the_o soul_n which_o then_o leave_v the_o body_n what_o can_v man_n think_v to_o be_v that_o soul_n that_o then_o leave_v it_o but_o if_o in_o truth_n this_o be_v the_o soul_n which_o in_o death_n leave_v the_o body_n then_o first_o it_o have_v a_o beginning_n but_o together_o with_o the_o body_n and_o this_o be_v take_v also_o away_o with_o death_n of_o the_o body_n for_o that_o there_o do_v not_o come_v to_o humane_a perceivance_n or_o knowledge_n of_o any_o other_o sort_n of_o soul_n depart_v at_o death_n but_o this_o only_a flame_n by_o they_o call_v harmony_n other_o opinion_n of_o anaxagoras_n heraclitus_n almaeon_n diogenes_n hippo_n and_o critias_n be_v also_o cite_v before_o and_o it_o seem_v the_o opinion_n general_o current_n be_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o distinct_a principle_n from_o the_o body_n and_o have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o death_n so_o strong_o conceit_v as_o some_o kill_v themselves_o to_o enjoy_v soul-felicity_n the_o soon_o and_o this_o ancient_a and_o general_a conceit_n have_v so_o much_o power_n even_o over_o aristotle_n himself_o as_o to_o induce_v he_o to_o discourse_v of_o the_o soul_n general_o after_o the_o mode_n of_o his_o time_n viz._n as_o of_o a_o self-subsisting_a principle_n and_o to_o affirm_v that_o a_o part_n of_o it_o the_o prime_n and_o contemplative_a part_n of_o it_o the_o intellect_n actu_fw-la be_v self-subsisting_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d immortal_a and_o eternal_a and_o to_o prevent_v any_o body_n demand_v what_o this_o soul_n be_v he_o say_v it_o be_v that_o only_a which_o it_o be_v and_o that_o only_o be_v immortal_a and_o eternal_a but_o he_o give_v no_o manner_n of_o confirmation_n from_o reason_n or_o offer_v any_o dilucidation_n or_o any_o far_a discourse_n upon_o the_o thing_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a whensoever_o he_o come_v to_o argue_v from_o reason_n upon_o this_o point_n of_o subsistence_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n all_o his_o argument_n conclude_v against_o such_o subsistence_n of_o a_o soul_n in_o that_o separate_a state_n for_o that_o it_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v wherein_o the_o body_n join_v not_o with_o it_o nor_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n not_o so_o much_o as_o move_v itself_o but_o by_o the_o body_n nor_o act_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o body_n but_o by_o the_o animal_n spirit_n can_v go_v out_o of_o the_o body_n nor_o alter_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o can_v command_v the_o passion_n affection_n or_o appetite_n but_o struggle_v with_o they_o after_o a_o natural_a manner_n and_o use_v sometime_o natural_a mean_n both_o outward_a and_o inward_a to_o obtain_v victory_n can_v punish_v a_o rebellious_a opposer_n nor_o make_v a_o hair_n white_a or_o black_a or_o diminish_v or_o increase_v the_o stature_n can_v final_o do_v nothing_o but_o in_o a_o natural_a way_n and_o by_o natural_a mean_n by_o the_o organ_n bodily_a and_o the_o animal_n spirit_n and_o therefore_o in_o all_o his_o argument_n and_o collection_n from_o particular_n or_o experience_n the_o soul_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o natural_a agent_n act_v in_o and_o by_o the_o body_n and_o employ_v chief_o the_o heart_n as_o vital_a and_o the_o head_n as_o sentient_a and_o intellectual_a and_o all_o other_o part_n in_o passion_n affection_n appetite_n and_o motion_n and_o yet_o as_o this_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v according_a to_o nature_n the_o same_o strength_n of_o reason_n may_v seem_v to_o conclude_v for_o she_o a_o suitable_a exit_fw-la such_o as_o may_v best_o agree_v with_o a_o natural_a or_o material_a spirit_n des_fw-mi carry_v in_o his_o philosophical_a principle_n part_v 4._o sect._n 197._o mention_n thus_o much_o shall_v we_o say_v or_o thus_o little_a of_o the_o soul_n he_o say_v we_o do_v well_o enough_o comprehend_v how_o by_o the_o bulk_n figure_n and_o motion_n of_o one_o body_n divers_a motion_n and_o change_n may_v be_v excite_v in_o another_o body_n be_v such_o as_o have_v great_a power_n to_o affect_v the_o same_o by_o act_n upon_o the_o sense_n but_o say_v he_o we_o can_v at_o all_o understand_v by_o what_o mode_n these_o bulk_n figure_n and_o motion_n do_v produce_v or_o effectual_o work_v upon_o
and_o then_o in_o kindle_a or_o inflame_a first_o for_o conserve_n of_o life_n and_o next_o for_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o motion_n in_o the_o animal_n extend_v to_o every_o member_n and_o part_n of_o it_o stir_v they_o up_o and_o enable_v they_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o duty_n for_o which_o they_o be_v by_o god_n intend_v and_o ordain_v the_o vital_a spirit_n be_v flammula_fw-la quaedam_fw-la breed_v in_o the_o heart_n out_o of_o the_o pure_a blood_n and_o thence_o by_o vital_a heat_n communicate_v and_o convey_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n impart_v power_n and_o activity_n to_o they_o by_o their_o natural_a heat_n and_o motion_n and_o stir_v they_o to_o act_v and_o perform_v those_o duty_n for_o which_o by_o nature_n and_o creation_n they_o be_v ordain_v and_o make_v the_o organ_n for_o convey_v this_o vital_a spirit_n into_o all_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o artery_n the_o animal_n do_v not_o otherwise_o differ_v from_o the_o vital_a spirit_n save_v that_o in_o be_v transfer_v to_o the_o brain_n that_o have_v power_n to_o rarify_v and_o make_v it_o more_o lucid_a and_o subtle_a and_o then_o be_v from_o thence_o infuse_v into_o the_o nerve_n it_o incite_v and_o enable_v they_o to_o exercise_v their_o faculty_n power_n and_o appoint_a office_n of_o sensation_n and_o motion_n and_o by_o both_o these_o sort_n of_o spirit_n the_o principal_a action_n of_o animal_n and_o even_o of_o humane_a body_n be_v effect_v namely_o life_n be_v preserve_v and_o thence_o proceed_v nutrition_n generation_n sense_n motion_n cogitation_n and_o affection_n hence_o it_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o some_o have_v think_v these_o spirit_n to_o be_v the_o very_a soul_n itself_o or_o at_o least_o the_o immediate_a instrument_n to_o it_o by_o which_o the_o body_n both_o life_n and_o move_v hoc_fw-la postremum_fw-la say_v our_o author_n verum_fw-la est_fw-la to_o which_o we_o do_v not_o assent_v but_o rather_o hold_v with_o the_o former_a lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 697._o treat_v exit_fw-la professo_fw-la de_fw-la anima_fw-la and_o cite_v out_o of_o tully_n that_o dicaearchus_n a_o peripatetic_a philosopher_n and_o scholar_n to_o aristotle_n hold_v there_o be_v no_o more_o soul_n in_o man_n than_o in_o beast_n this_o say_v our_o author_n though_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o all_o philosopher_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v or_o believe_v they_o in_o it_o because_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o be_v against_o it_o pag._n 69●_n he_o take_v it_o pro_fw-la confesso_fw-la as_o agree_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o soul_n of_o beast_n do_v die_v with_o their_o body_n without_o a_o principle_n of_o separately_z subsist_v after_o death_n of_o the_o body_n but_o there_o be_v many_o dispute_n concern_v humane_a soul_n 1._o what_o a_o humane_a soul_n be_v 2_o concern_v its_o nature_n and_o operation_n 3_o concern_v its_o original_a whether_o by_o continual_a new_a creation_n or_o that_o it_o grow_v exit_fw-la traduce_v from_o generation_n for_o be_v pre-existent_a and_o if_o new_o create_v then_o whether_o first_o create_v and_o then_o infuse_v or_o be_v create_v within_o the_o body_n whether_o the_o vegetative_a the_o sensitive_a and_o the_o rational_a be_v all_o one_o same_o soul_n in_o man_n or_o that_o they_o be_v so_o distinct_a as_o that_o the_o two_o first_o may_v die_v and_o the_o three_o only_o be_v that_o which_o can_v separately_z subsist_v but_o the_o question_n of_o the_o soul_n nature_n est_fw-la per_fw-la difficilis_fw-la &_o per_fw-la obscura_fw-la tertullian_n s._n austin_n and_o greg._n nyssen_n have_v write_v of_o it_o large_o and_o pomponacius_n and_o simon_n portius_n two_o famous_a italian_a philosopher_n have_v since_o teach_v that_o aristotle_n hold_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v mortal_a and_o that_o its_o immortality_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o sufficient_a reason_n but_o man_n must_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o evidence_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o point_n and_o many_o there_o be_v who_o think_v there_o be_v not_o enough_o evidence_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o that_o faith_n pag._n 699._o he_o therefore_o propose_v his_o first_o enquiry_n viz._n what_o be_v the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o the_o soul_n upon_o this_o query_n he_o propound_v the_o definition_n make_v of_o the_o soul_n by_o three_o ancient_a philosopher_n and_o very_o learned_a man_n viz._n plato_n aristotle_n and_o galen_n the_o great_a latin_a physician_n but_o none_o of_o they_o come_v up_o to_o this_o point_n and_o therefore_o he_o reject_v they_o all_o especial_o that_o of_o galen_n who_o say_v the_o soul_n be_v but_o a_o temperature_n and_o suitable_a proportion_n of_o the_o part_n and_o humour_n whereby_o the_o animal_n have_v life_n and_o the_o use_v of_o all_o its_o faculty_n and_o this_o opinion_n he_o take_v from_o his_o master_n hippocrates_n and_o endeavour_n to_o confirm_v it_o with_o divers_a reason_n and_o of_o this_o opinion_n be_v then_o dynarchus_n the_o philosopher_n and_o simmias_n and_o divers_a other_o the_o author_n bring_v three_o argument_n against_o this_o opinion_n but_o they_o be_v rather_o sophistical_a than_o solid_a he_o reject_v also_o those_o of_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n but_o in_o lieu_n of_o they_o all_o he_o give_v we_o one_o of_o his_o own_o pag._n 705._o viz._n a_o humane_a soul_n be_v a_o true_o spiritual_a substance_n incorporeal_a and_o immaterial_a upon_o this_o last_o word_n he_o lay_v a_o great_a stress_n for_o say_v he_o the_o soul_n of_o beast_n be_v essential_a form_n but_o draw_v out_o of_o matter_n from_o which_o they_o can_v be_v separate_v and_o there_o be_v those_o who_o think_v the_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o form_n to_o our_o body_n to_o be_v neither_o accident_n nor_o body_n and_o that_o yet_o it_o be_v material_a so_o as_o to_o depend_v upon_o matter_n from_o which_o it_o can_v be_v separate_v and_o therefore_o must_v extinguish_v with_o death_n of_o the_o body_n upon_o this_o therefore_o the_o whole_a stress_n of_o the_o question_n lie_v concern_v the_o mortality_n or_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n whence_o say_v he_o this_o our_o definition_n ought_v to_o be_v well_o and_o full_o prove_v say_v humane_a soul_n have_v the_o same_o essence_n with_o angelical_a spirit_n their_o only_a difference_n be_v that_o the_o one_o be_v form_n to_o a_o humane_a body_n and_o the_o other_o not_o his_o proof_n he_o begin_v from_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o we_o yet_o in_o the_o bound_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n will_v pass_v they_o over_o animo_fw-la revertendi_fw-la and_o consider_v here_o his_o argument_n from_o reason_n only_o to_o which_o he_o come_v pag._n 709._o 1._o he_o say_v the_o soul_n govern_v the_o body_n and_o resist_v the_o passion_n complexion_n excite_v and_o beget_v passion_n here_o be_v the_o soul_n contend_v against_o passion_n and_o natural_a inclination_n support_v they_o ergo_fw-la here_o be_v a_o substantial_a soul_n in_o answer_n i_o say_v the_o soul_n have_v no_o great_a share_n in_o the_o resist_a than_o in_o the_o exciting_a of_o passion_n but_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o live_n and_o move_a principle_n in_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o body_n understanding_n and_o perceive_v and_o remember_v in_o the_o head_n affect_v and_o passionate_a in_o the_o heart_n feel_v and_o move_v in_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o in_o every_o member_n of_o it_o the_o soul_n regard_v and_o care_n be_v for_o the_o whole_a compositum_fw-la to_o choose_v the_o beneficial_a and_o to_o avoid_v the_o hurtful_a thing_n hence_o intellect_n and_o passion_n be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o other_o not_o the_o soul_n but_o both_o be_v faculty_n of_o the_o same_o soul_n the_o heart_n desire_v one_o thing_n as_o vital_o good_a or_o abhor_v it_o as_o harmful_a the_o intellect_n from_o common_a sense_n and_o understanding_n often_o oppose_v such_o desire_n or_o fear_n from_o consideration_n more_o percipient_a and_o due_o weigh_v and_o the_o contest_v rise_v most_o often_o from_o the_o nearness_n or_o distance_n of_o what_o they_o contend_v about_o viz._n present_a or_o future_a one_o faculty_n affix_v chief_o upon_o the_o enjoyment_n and_o the_o other_o contemplate_v the_o consequence_n withal_o now_o if_o the_o soul_n do_v govern_v the_o body_n as_o our_o author_n faith_n it_o do_v the_o contest_v can_v not_o be_v maintain_v against_o it_o by_o the_o passion_n which_o shall_v natural_o be_v order_v to_o yield_v a_o easy_a submission_n to_o it_o whereas_o it_o be_v too_o evident_a that_o the_o passion_n do_v often_o overpower_v and_o over-rule_v the_o intellect_n and_o as_o aristotle_n have_v tell_v we_o their_o contest_v be_v more_o like_o a_o game_n at_o tennis_n than_o a_o government_n sometime_o one_o of_o they_o prevail_v and_o sometime_o the_o other_o so_o they_o look_v not_o like_o a_o governor_n and_o a_o govern_v but_o rather_o like_o equal_a
competitor_n share_v in_o the_o command_n and_o government_n and_o this_o sine_z fine_z the_o contest_v have_v no_o determination_n but_o by_o dissolution_n of_o the_o compositum_fw-la and_o this_o prove_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v of_o nature_n and_o so_o do_v the_o universality_n of_o it_o there_o be_v not_o a_o humane_a soul_n right_o constitute_v wherein_o this_o contest_v be_v not_o full_o evident_a our_o author_n have_v well_o foresee_v that_o his_o definition_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o true_a spiritual_a incorporeal_a substance_n will_v be_v easy_o grant_v but_o his_o word_n immaterial_a be_v that_o which_o will_v make_v the_o boggle_v and_o therefore_o he_o promise_v diligent_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o but_o in_o this_o argument_n we_o meet_v not_o with_o any_o mention_n of_o that_o quality_n and_o therefore_o conclude_v we_o be_v not_o at_o all_o press_v by_o it_o pag._n 710._o he_o propound_v three_o rule_n upon_o material_a form_n 1._o that_o they_o act_n not_o but_o when_o they_o be_v form_n of_o some_o body_n 2._o they_o be_v that_o principle_n by_o which_o the_o compositum_fw-la be_v act_v and_o do_v not_o work_v to_o effect_v but_o by_o the_o compositum_fw-la 3._o they_o be_v limit_v in_o their_o extent_n not_o reach_v far_o than_o the_o subject_a in_o which_o they_o be_v and_o to_o these_o we_o do_v also_o agree_v he_o argue_v the_o humane_a soul_n be_v not_o only_o the_o cause_n that_o the_o man_n do_v understand_v but_o such_o soul_n do_v understand_v by_o herself_o for_o this_o he_o cite_v arist_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o i_o have_v search_v that_o chapter_n but_o do_v not_o find_v it_o there_o and_o however_o do_v not_o grant_v or_o believe_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a 2._o he_o argue_v the_o sense_n take_v harm_n by_o a_o over-vehement_a force_n of_o their_o object_n but_o the_o intellect_n do_v not_o so_o this_o he_o have_v from_o aristotle_n hence_o he_o conclude_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immaterial_a which_o we_o pass_v for_o a_o apparent_a non_fw-fr sequitur_fw-la 3._o he_o argue_v the_o less_o our_o mind_n be_v employ_v in_o external_n thing_n the_o more_o apt_a and_o ready_a they_o be_v to_o work_v this_o i_o deny_v and_o say_v the_o more_o exercise_v and_o practise_v the_o more_o apt_a and_o ready_a they_o be_v for_o those_o thing_n be_v they_o worldly_a or_o contemplative_a 4._o he_o argue_v the_o soul_n understand_v and_o know_v itself_o its_o power_n and_o action_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o substance_n differ_v from_o the_o body_n all_o this_o i_o deny_v 5._o argue_v the_o intellect_n can_v apprehend_v all_o finite_a thing_n but_o if_o it_o be_v material_a it_o can_v not_o discern_v one_o matter_n from_o another_o nor_o know_v their_o difference_n this_o i_o say_v the_o beast_n do_v easy_o perform_v 6._o argue_v the_o intellect_n perceive_v abstract_v thing_n and_o immaterial_a as_o god_n angel_n universals_z and_o mathematical_a notion_n therefore_o it_o be_v immaterial_a we_o answer_v universals_z and_o notion_n be_v derive_v from_o particular_n and_o material_n and_o what_o man_n know_v of_o god_n and_o angel_n come_v from_o revelation_n and_o sense_n of_o all_o which_o a_o material_a spirit_n act_v in_o and_o with_o fit_a organ_n be_v enough_o capable_a 7._o argue_v quicquid_fw-la recipitur_fw-la fit_a ad_fw-la modum_fw-la recipientis_fw-la but_o the_o intellect_n turn_v all_o into_o universals_z and_o immaterial_a notion_n this_o i_o deny_v can_v do_v it_o i_o grant_v it_o be_v capable_a both_o of_o particular_n and_o universals_z seem_v alike_o capable_a not_o one_o more_o natural_a than_o the_o other_o whence_o the_o modus_fw-la recipiendi_fw-la be_v first_o of_o the_o particular_a by_o observe_v and_o correction_n of_o which_o rule_n be_v frame_v and_o notion_n raise_v by_o ordinary_a proceed_v in_o a_o rational_a intellect_n not_o need_v or_o to_o i_o prove_v a_o immateriality_n of_o the_o soul_n 8._o argue_v the_o outward_a sense_n convey_v the_o species_n of_o their_o object_n to_o the_o common_a sense_n that_o transmits_n they_o to_o the_o fantasy_n thence_o there_o must_v be_v organ_n to_o convey_v they_o to_o the_o intellect_n but_o once_o come_v thither_o the_o intellect_n order_v they_o and_o judge_n of_o they_o without_o help_n of_o any_o organ_n at_o all_o this_o if_o he_o can_v maintain_v by_o good_a proof_n erit_fw-la apollo_n and_o shall_v have_v the_o garland_n but_o till_o that_o be_v do_v we_o be_v where_o we_o begin_v 9_o pag._n 713._o his_o nine_o argument_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o ramble_n pag_n 716._o his_o ten_o argument_n be_v take_v ex_fw-la non_fw-la concessis_fw-la 11._o argue_v god_n be_v the_o soul_n chief_a good_a therefore_o the_o must_v necessary_o have_v mean_n to_o attain_v to_o he_o but_o that_o she_o can_v do_v while_o she_o be_v in_o the_o body_n obstruct_v by_o sensual_a power_n therefore_o she_o must_v have_v a_o subsistence_n out_o of_o the_o body_n in_o which_o she_o may_v arrive_v to_o that_o enjoyment_n i_o answer_v this_o beg_v the_o question_n or_o presume_v the_o case_n determine_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o she_o as_o our_o author_n promise_v to_o prove_v and_o now_o bring_v she_o to_o stand_v upon_o a_o bare_a supposal_n with_o as_o little_a firmness_n as_o when_o he_o begin_v his_o argument_n the_o subsistence_n in_o separation_n be_v continue_v to_o be_v deny_v and_o till_o that_o evince_v to_o be_v erroneous_a this_o argument_n be_v very_a vanity_n 12._o argue_v that_o which_o do_v real_o move_v and_o act_v itself_o must_v be_v immaterial_a but_o man_n soul_n do_v so_o and_o have_v a_o free_a will_n and_o choice_n to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v i_o demand_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o beast_n he_o say_v the_o element_n do_v not_o move_v because_o they_o be_v material_a i_o demand_v how_o he_o dispose_v of_o the_o fire_n which_o the_o world_n take_v to_o be_v always_o in_o motion_n and_o that_o natural_o he_o say_v the_o beast_n can_v make_v no_o resistance_n to_o their_o appetite_n but_o must_v needs_o follow_v they_o yet_o every_o day_n afford_v we_o proof_n that_o beast_n can_v and_o do_v resist_v their_o appetite_n a_o setting-dog_n have_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o run_v and_o his_o mouth_n will_v work_v and_o his_o chap_n water_n and_o yet_o he_o contain_v himself_o and_o sit_v still_o in_o sight_n of_o his_o game_n for_o a_o long_a time_n together_o 13._o argue_v pag._n 717._o man_n have_v power_n to_o choose_v loss_n of_o their_o blood_n and_o life_n and_o that_o show_v their_o soul_n superior_a and_o not_o dependent_a upon_o their_o body_n and_o we_o agree_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v all_o that_o and_o that_o the_o intellect_n have_v a_o swasive_a power_n over_o other_o faculty_n and_o sometime_o prevail_v with_o they_o to_o suffer_v pain_n and_o present_a death_n in_o expectation_n of_o believe_v future_a reward_n and_o this_o by_o a_o power_n of_o discretion_n in_o the_o intellect_n without_o dependence_n upon_o the_o body_n or_o immateriality_n in_o the_o soul_n pag._n 718._o say_v if_o the_o soul_n be_v material_a it_o will_v languish_v with_o the_o body_n suffer_v in_o its_o sickness_n feel_v its_o infirmity_n and_o weaken_v as_o the_o body_n grow_v weak_a and_o all_o this_o we_o say_v it_o do_v sequitur_fw-la temperamentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la and_o that_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o its_o materiality_n he_o say_v man_n mind_n in_o sickness_n and_o at_o death_n be_v more_o lively_a sensible_a of_o their_o sin_n than_o in_o health_n that_o grow_v from_o tear_n of_o approach_a danger_n of_o be_v take_v away_o in_o a_o state_n of_o sin_n for_o which_o punishment_n be_v undoubted_o to_o be_v award_v at_o the_o resurrection_n without_o mean_n or_o hope_n of_o any_o alteration_n in_o the_o space_n intermediate_v betwixt_o death_n and_o that_o and_o not_o from_o a_o quickness_n of_o mind_n more_o than_o or_o above_o ordinary_a but_o from_o the_o nearness_n and_o greatness_n of_o the_o concern_v he_o say_v when_o man_n forsake_v worldly_a business_n they_o be_v make_v more_o apt_a for_o contemplation_n and_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v outward_a help_n as_o abstinence_n and_o retiredness_n which_o may_v advance_v the_o intellective_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o strengthen_v it_o against_o the_o passionate_a and_o sensual_a faculty_n and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v assist_v by_o purge_v bleed_a or_o other_o physic_n so_o by_o good_a air_n good_a company_n and_o even_o by_o good_a news_n which_o all_o be_v token_n of_o the_o soul_n participation_n with_o the_o body_n and_o induce_v to_o apprehend_v its_o material_a subsistence_n with_o and_o in_o the_o body_n our_o author_n conclude_v he_o have_v enough_o prove_v the_o soul_n immateriality_n but_o we_o still_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v enough_o do_v it_o and_o how_o much_o he_o have_v do_v towards_o it_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o common_a
need_v not_o any_o bodily_a organ_n but_o can_v act_v alone_o and_o by_o its_o own_o single_a power_n and_o if_o one_o soul_n can_v produce_v another_o yet_o that_o can_v be_v do_v by_o efficiency_n of_o seed_n or_o corporeal_a generation_n 5_o the_o soul_n be_v immortal_a and_o self-subsistent_a neither_o die_v nor_o decay_n with_o the_o body_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o generate_v by_o it_o or_o proceed_v from_o it_o i_o say_v these_o two_o argument_n proceed_v ex_fw-la non_fw-la concessis_fw-la the_o inference_n be_v reasonable_a but_o the_o foundation_n fail_v and_o be_v not_o grant_v nor_o enough_o prove_v 6._o p._n 775._o if_o the_o soul_n be_v propagate_v from_o the_o seed_n it_o be_v but_o as_o tree_n and_o beast_n be_v and_o if_o the_o seed_n be_v corporeal_a the_o spirit_n thence_o arise_v must_v be_v material_a for_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n whence_o the_o soul_n must_v be_v corruptible_a and_o mortal_a i_o grant_v his_o argument_n which_o he_o say_v can_v be_v easy_o refute_v except_o by_o such_o as_o will_v reject_v his_o principle_n of_o the_o soul_n immateriality_n and_o self-subsistence_n as_o we_o have_v do_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o yet_o continue_v to_o do_v pag._n 775._o now_o he_o come_v to_o his_o case_n of_o how_o his_o new_a create_a soul_n may_v be_v just_o involve_v in_o the_o gild_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o he_o begin_v as_o common_o man_n do_v in_o such_o undertake_n to_o prove_v obscurum_fw-la per_fw-la obscurius_fw-la viz._n the_o thing_n proceed_v from_o god_n decree_n that_o so_o it_o shall_v be_v i_o ask_v how_o do_v he_o know_v that_o he_o do_v not_o pretend_v particular_a revelation_n for_o it_o no_o but_o he_o pay_v god_n do_v decree_n to_o join_v these_o new_a create_v and_o pure_a soul_n with_o body_n conceive_v in_o sin_n although_o he_o know_v that_o thence_o it_o will_v follow_v those_o soul_n shall_v thereby_o become_v infect_v with_o sin_n but_o not_o one_o word_n of_o proof_n neither_o of_o the_o decree_n nor_o how_o the_o new_a soul_n be_v infect_v nor_o that_o it_o be_v so_o infect_v and_o we_o dare_v not_o take_v his_o word_n for_o all_o this_o but_o he_o go_v on_o first_o say_v he_o god_n decree_v to_o permit_v sin_n but_o he_o prove_v not_o that_o and_o yet_o it_o seem_v to_o stand_v in_o great_a need_n of_o prove_v then_o he_o decree_v the_o gild_n and_o woeful_a effect_n of_o adam_n sin_n shall_v be_v derive_v upon_o all_o his_o posterity_n still_o he_o need_v proof_n of_o a_o decree_n of_o god_n in_o this_o point_n then_o god_n say_v he_o decree_v the_o redemption_n of_o the_o elect_a by_o christ_n and_o reprobate_v all_o the_o residue_n of_o people_n hence_o say_v he_o it_o come_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v by_o god_n do_v and_o permit_v against_o our_o rule_n of_o justice_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v in_o his_o power_n easy_o to_o hinder_v or_o alter_v and_o because_o he_o do_v do_v or_o permit_v such_o thing_n we_o must_v conceive_v that_o thing_n so_o do_v or_o suffer_v to_o be_v do_v be_v certain_o agreeable_a to_o justice_n and_o goodness_n he_o say_v in_o respect_n to_o god_n order_n and_o decree_n i_o say_v in_o respect_n to_o his_o nature_n and_o be_v but_o we_o both_o agree_v man_n do_v not_o know_v how_o to_o reconcile_v thing_n so_o do_v or_o permit_v with_o the_o common_a rule_n of_o morality_n among_o men._n and_o it_o seem_v it_o have_v be_v no_o ill_a course_n for_o our_o author_n in_o this_o case_n to_o have_v say_v soul_n must_v be_v thus_o infect_v with_o sin_n by_o god_n decree_n although_o it_o be_v above_o our_o present_a state_n to_o know_v either_o the_o manner_n how_o or_o the_o reason_n why_o pag._n 776_o &_o 777._o say_v god_n make_v man_n in_o his_o image_n just_a and_o upright_o and_o so_o may_v his_o posterity_n have_v continue_v i_o say_v if_o god_n have_v not_o as_o our_o author_n say_v otherwise_o decree_v it_o well_o but_o by_o adam_n sin_n all_o be_v lose_v both_o to_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n for_o as_o levy_v pay_v tithe_n to_o melchizedeck_v in_o abraham_n so_o all_o man_n sin_v in_o adam_n i_o say_v this_o comparison_n seem_v apt_a enough_o deem_v levy_n payment_n in_o abraham_n but_o notional_a or_o putative_a and_o allege_v argumentative_a say_v our_o author_n adam_n be_v sin_n be_v not_o more_o actual_a to_o he_o than_o it_o be_v original_a to_o all_o his_o posterity_n there_o follow_v a_o propensity_n to_o sin_n in_o adam_n and_o thence_o a_o corruption_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o his_o posterity_n call_v original_a sin_n as_o a_o penal_a consequence_n of_o that_o offence_n adam_n be_v disobedience_n be_v impute_v to_o all_o his_o offspring_n to_o bring_v the_o new_a create_a soul_n under_o the_o guilt_n of_o this_o original_a the_o author_n deny_v to_o say_v that_o proper_o and_o real_o the_o body_n do_v work_v upon_o the_o soul_n and_o so_o infect_v it_o but_o he_o do_v say_v that_o in_o the_o instant_n when_o god_n join_v the_o soul_n new_o by_o he_o create_v to_o the_o body_n conceive_v in_o sin_n the_o compositum_fw-la become_v man_n and_o then_o and_o thenceforth_o adam_n be_v sin_n be_v impute_v to_o this_o compositum_fw-la exist_v in_o the_o womb._n he_o say_v some_o take_v original_a sin_n only_o for_o a_o corruptness_n in_o man_n nature_n or_o a_o propensity_n to_o sin_n this_o he_o avoid_v as_o make_v it_o hard_a to_o show_v how_o this_o can_v come_v into_o a_o new_a create_a soul_n over_o which_o the_o body_n can_v have_v power_n nor_o will_v god_n it_o seem_v endow_v or_o infect_v it_o with_o this_o evil_a inclination_n nor_o will_v there_o be_v any_o other_o likely_a mean_n for_o this_o to_o arise_v in_o the_o soul_n save_v only_o by_o propagation_n pag._n 778._o but_o yet_o he_o will_v find_v a_o mean_n to_o do_v this_o and_o he_o say_v it_o arise_v from_o the_o just_a appointment_n of_o god_n that_o all_o adam_n be_v offspring_n shall_v have_v such_o a_o corrupt_a nature_n in_o they_o take_v from_o adam_n as_o their_o fountain_n end_v original_a and_o this_o shall_v reach_v to_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o body_n under_o the_o name_n of_o natural_a corruption_n so_o it_o grow_v not_o from_o the_o body_n infect_v the_o soul_n but_o by_o the_o will_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n to_o this_o i_o say_v the_o word_n or_o intent_n that_o adam_n offspring_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v can_v reach_v no_o far_o than_o to_o what_o come_v from_o he_o by_o generation_n which_o soul_n our_o author_n say_v do_v not_o and_o the_o soul_n principal_a in_o man_n who_o upon_o breath_n give_v he_o become_v a_o live_a soul_n and_o therefore_o a_o appointment_n that_o new_o create_v soul_n as_o he_o say_v all_o be_v shall_v all_o be_v necessa_o corrupt_v and_o incline_v to_o sin_n continual_o for_o one_o offence_n of_o the_o old_a adam_n with_o who_o they_o never_o have_v any_o relation_n or_o affinity_n nor_o any_o derivation_n from_o he_o our_o author_n entitle_v it_o just_a but_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o very_o incongruous_a and_o hetorogenial_a to_o rule_n of_o equity_n and_o reason_n he_o do_v not_o prove_v such_o appointment_n of_o god_n nor_o offer_v to_o maintain_v by_o reason_n that_o the_o thing_n will_v be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o ordinary_a rule_n of_o equity_n or_o reason_n we_o therefore_o take_v it_o all_o for_o his_o fancy_n and_o that_o he_o be_v under_o a_o mistake_n in_o the_o main_a of_o this_o argument_n and_o that_o what_o be_v true_a in_o and_o concern_v the_o guilt_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v much_o more_o maintainable_a by_o those_o who_o raise_v soul_n as_o well_o as_o body_n from_o adam_n by_o generation_n then_o by_o those_o who_o do_v believe_v that_o god_n create_v new_a soul_n for_o the_o supply_n of_o every_o successful_a humane_a coition_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o those_o betwixt_o man_n and_o beast_n where_o the_o product_n be_v of_o a_o humane_a shape_n pag._n 779._o now_o he_o come_v to_o defend_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n proceed_v in_o this_o case_n and_o say_v though_o god_n put_v the_o infect_a body_n and_o the_o pure_a soul_n together_o god_n do_v not_o instill_v or_o put_v the_o evil_a qualification_n into_o the_o soul_n nor_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v infect_v by_o the_o body_n but_o the_o corruptiin_n of_o the_o pure_a new_o create_v and_o much_o to_o be_v pity_v soul_n grow_v upon_o it_o only_o by_o accident_n if_o adam_n have_v not_o sin_v god_n will_v yet_o have_v be_v always_o make_v new_a soul_n as_o he_o be_v all_o the_o world_n over_o and_o he_o join_v soul_n and_o body_n per_fw-la se_fw-la but_o the_o soul_n be_v infect_v per_fw-la accidens_fw-la all_o be_v word_n and_o fancy_n without_o show_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o per_fw-la
the_o middle_a of_o the_o body_n and_o call_v the_o soul_n a_o part_n of_o humane_a nature_n not_o perfect_a without_o its_o body_n and_o therefore_o desire_v a_o reunion_n all_o contrary_a to_o his_o former_a assertion_n pag._n 788._o say_v the_o body_n do_v nothing_o without_o the_o soul_n nec_fw-la ferè_fw-la anima_fw-la sine_fw-la corpore_fw-la pag._n 793._o say_v the_o soul_n be_v not_o tota_n in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la nor_o in_o any_o part_n nor_o affix_v to_o any_o organ_n no_o nor_o tota_n in_o toto_fw-la and_o yet_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v tota_n in_o toto_fw-la &_o in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la as_o light_n be_v in_o the_o air_n both_o light_n and_o heat_n appear_v in_o different_a degree_n in_o divers_a place_n and_o yet_o their_o influence_n reach_v to_o the_o whole_a horizon_n pag._n 794._o that_o which_o be_v indivisible_a totum_fw-la est_fw-la ubi_fw-la est_fw-la and_o this_o hold_v in_o the_o soul_n and_o so_o god_n be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o every_o part_n of_o it_o and_o as_o soul_n and_o body_n unite_v be_v yet_o distinct_a soul_n and_o body_n so_o pag._n 798._o the_o end_n of_o reason_n and_o a_o humane_a soul_n be_v to_o know_v and_o love_n god_n but_o the_o intellect_n be_v like_o clean_a white_a paper_n without_o any_o character_n upon_o it_o and_o can_v perceive_v but_o by_o the_o sense_n nor_o work_v without_o bodily_a organ_n and_o those_o must_v have_v life_n or_o else_o they_o can_v not_o have_v sense_n and_o life_n must_v have_v nourishment_n whence_o there_o be_v in_o the_o soul_n a_o nutritive_a faculty_n for_o support_n augmentation_n and_o procreation_n then_o a_o sensitive_a faculty_n be_v a_o power_n of_o perceive_v external_n object_n for_o benefit_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o animal_n next_o a_o power_n to_o retain_v and_o preserve_v the_o species_n or_o idea_n of_o what_o be_v perceive_v and_o then_o a_o power_n of_o offer_v they_o to_o the_o intellect_n for_o obtain_v a_o judgement_n upon_o they_o pag._n 799._o the_o humane_a soul_n though_o it_o work_v in_o the_o body_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o work_v by_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n and_o therefore_o its_o action_n be_v not_o common_a with_o the_o body_n apply_v this_o particular_o to_o the_o intellect_n and_o that_o he_o say_v be_v endow_v with_o certain_a gift_n or_o impression_n by_o god_n at_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o by_o help_n of_o they_o man_n may_v better_o comprehend_v all_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v such_o common_a innate_a notion_n experience_n do_v manifest_a call_v these_o the_o spark_n and_o seed_n of_o knowledge_n in_o man_n but_o this_o he_o confess_v be_v reject_v by_o aristotle_n which_o yet_o he_o will_v make_v some_o kind_n of_o argument_n for_o soul_n be_v create_v and_o therefore_o prefer_v the_o platonic_a and_o stoical_a opinion_n before_o that_o of_o aristotle_n and_o therefore_o will_v not_o admit_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o nothingh_n be_v in_o the_o intellect_n which_o come_v not_o thither_o throug_n the_o sense_n to_o be_v absolute_o true_a but_o only_o that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o be_v so_o though_o he_o have_v repeat_v and_o grant_v this_o rule_n without_o exception_n several_a time_n before_o pag._n 800._o say_v that_o for_o all_o these_o impression_n make_v by_o god_n upon_o soul_n yet_o the_o intellect_n be_v still_o as_o a_o white_a paper_n without_o write_v or_o character_n upon_o it_o and_o therefore_o must_v seek_v to_o obtain_v its_o knowledge_n from_o without_o itself_o and_o this_o it_o seek_v from_o the_o sense_n and_o from_o god_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n how_o the_o intellect_n shall_v be_v as_o fair_a white_a paper_n and_o yet_o have_v character_n imprint_v upon_o it_o i_o do_v not_o conceive_v nor_o divers_a other_o thing_n late_o before_o deliver_v by_o our_o author_n our_o author_n seem_v to_o have_v pursue_v this_o argument_n concern_v the_o soul_n through_o all_o the_o know_v particular_n that_o may_v be_v belong_v to_o it_o and_o yet_o have_v not_o thorough_o satisfy_v himself_o thereupon_o and_o therefore_o he_o begin_v again_o with_o it_o pag._n 802._o and_o run_v descant_v upon_o it_o all_o over_o again_o unto_o pag._n 851._o repeat_a and_o confirm_v his_o former_a argument_n first_o he_o quote_v text_n of_o scripture_n to_o pag._n 809._o and_o there_o quote_v the_o opinion_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o world_n to_o his_o opinion_n pag._n 810._o he_o begin_v with_o say_n of_o philosopher_n pythagoras_n and_o plato_n who_o hold_v pre-existence_n of_o soul_n and_o consequent_o their_o separate_a subsistence_n then_o alcmaeon_n and_o anaxagoras_n who_o hold_v their_o spirituality_n then_o the_o stoic_n pag._n 812._o he_o come_v to_o aristotle_n and_o say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o will_n to_o declare_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o soul_n but_o do_v on_o purpose_n speak_v obscure_o about_o it_o but_o yet_o say_v he_o aristotle_n do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v material_a or_o mortal_a and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o quote_v 14_o place_n out_o of_o aristotle_n write_n which_o be_v not_o needful_a on_o our_o behalf_n for_o that_o this_o assertion_n be_v before_o agree_v by_o we_o this_o reach_n to_o pag._n 820._o and_o there_o cite_v turk_n tartar_n persian_n he_o may_v have_v say_v mahometan_n agree_v to_o his_o tenet_n and_o so_o other_o barbarous_a nation_n pag._n 821._o he_o come_v to_o reason_n first_o upon_o moral_a congruity_n that_o there_o must_v be_v future_a reward_n and_o punishment_n which_o he_o think_v can_v be_v without_o a_o separately-subsisting_a soul_n and_o go_v on_o to_o 12_o argument_n reach_v to_o pag._n 827._o pag._n 828._o say_v if_o the_o soul_n come_v from_o generation_n it_o must_v be_v elementary_a and_o material_a pag._n 829._o bring_v argument_n from_o the_o soul_n own_o action_n and_o motion_n pag._n 830._o add_v a_o 13_o argument_n to_o his_o former_a 12_o and_o thence_o to_o pag._n 834._o he_o make_v up_o his_o argument_n to_o 20._o and_o he_o cite_v euseb_n hist_o lib._n 6._o cap._n 36._o where_o we_o do_v find_v that_o in_o origin_n time_n there_o arise_v in_o arabia_n author_n of_o a_o pernicious_a doctrine_n who_o teach_v that_o soul_n die_v here_o with_o their_o body_n and_o that_o at_o the_o resurrection_n they_o rise_v again_o together_o and_o a_o great_a synod_n be_v summon_v upon_o that_o account_n and_o origin_n send_v for_o unto_o it_o and_o he_o so_o discourse_v and_o dispute_v that_o he_o purge_v their_o seduce_a mind_n from_o this_o foul_a error_n cite_v by_o our_o author_n pag._n 804._o it_o seem_v the_o opinion_n be_v condemn_v in_o that_o synod_n by_o origin_n assistance_n but_o that_o also_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o such_o a_o novelty_n as_o without_o his_o testimony_n it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v pag._n 835._o our_o author_n come_v to_o cite_v and_o confute_v argument_n make_v against_o his_o tenet_n 1._o we_o see_v nothing_o part_v at_o death_n of_o a_o body_n but_o a_o vanish_v breath_n nor_o can_v perceive_v and_o hardly_o conceive_v what_o a_o soul_n be_v or_o shall_v be_v without_o a_o body_n hence_o he_o say_v man_n must_v doubt_v of_o god_n and_o spirit_n pag._n 837._o arg._n 4._o the_o soul_n can_v operate_v without_o the_o body_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o so_o subsist_v he_o say_v the_o soul_n both_o understand_v and_o will_v without_o the_o body_n pag._n 838._o and_o the_o intellective_a memory_n remain_v in_o a_o separate_a soul_n and_o so_o love_n joy_n and_o their_o like_a in_o a_o intellectual_a manner_n pag._n 839._o arg._n 5._o in_o great_a weakness_n of_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n operation_n be_v alto_fw-mi feeble_a the_o sum_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o this_o be_v a_o denial_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o whether_o true_a or_o not_o be_v leave_v to_o judgement_n and_o experience_n pag._n 840._o the_o soul_n part_v unwilling_o from_o the_o body_n this_o argue_v she_o do_v not_o apprehend_v the_o go_n to_o a_o more_o perfect_a state_n but_o rather_o to_o corruption_n or_o extinguishment_n and_o christ_n will_v have_v avoid_v this_o cup_n and_o yet_o he_o know_v that_o be_v his_o way_n to_o a_o resurrection_n and_o future_a happiness_n to_o this_o he_o make_v a_o long_a answer_n not_o to_o be_v sum_v in_o few_o word_n pag._n 841._o arg._n 7._o the_o soul_n be_v trouble_v with_o divers_a affliction_n but_o spirit_n or_o immaterial_a substance_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o mortal_a perturbation_n therefore_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o such_o a_o spirit_n he_o answer_v the_o body_n contrariety_n to_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o soul_n be_v great_a affliction_n and_o if_o angel_n be_v so_o knit_v to_o body_n they_o will_v be_v as_o much_o trouble_v and_o in_o man_n this_o perturbation_n be_v one_o effect_v of_o sin_n pag._n 843._o he_o compare_v die_v to_o the_o child_n leave_v the_o womb_n which_o he_o fancy_v the_o child_n
sense_n viz._n brute_n and_o man_n live_v real_o and_o intentional_o god_n and_o angel_n intentional_o this_o say_v our_o author_n be_v a_o feign_a invention_n fol._n 50._o n._n 3._o say_v the_o soul_n do_v concur_v both_o effectual_o and_o immediate_o in_o the_o exercise_v of_o its_o own_o operation_n the_o soul_n deserve_v well_o or_o ill_o according_a to_o the_o good_a or_o ill_a will_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o whence_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n that_o it_o free_v and_o not_o the_o will._n merit_n and_o demerit_n grow_v from_o a_o liberty_n to_o do_v or_o suffer_v or_o not_o and_o therefore_o this_o liberty_n belong_v immediate_o and_o principal_o not_o to_o the_o will_n but_o to_o the_o soul_n so_o the_o soul_n in_o true_o free_a and_o have_v power_n to_o determine_v its_o own_o efficiency_n and_o operation_n agree_v with_o what_o we_o have_v before_o speak_v concern_v it_o n._n 5._o the_o will_n be_v coeca_fw-la potentia_fw-la and_o can_v work_v but_o as_o it_o be_v determine_v by_o knowledge_n and_o the_o know_a principle_n be_v that_o which_o be_v free_a formal_o fol._n 52._o n._n 7._o say_v the_o soul_n have_v no_o part_n but_o the_o whole_a concur_v to_o every_o vital_a action_n in_o hand_n head_n foot_n etc._n etc._n this_o i_o say_v be_v the_o inconvenient_a result_n of_o frame_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o immaterial_a substance_n and_o impartible_a hence_o follow_v our_o author_n assertion_n that_o the_o whole_a soul_n must_v be_v undividable_o act_v in_o all_o part_n at_o once_o and_o whole_o in_o every_o part_n which_o to_o unprejudiced_a person_n look_v very_o like_o unintelligible_a n._n 11._o the_o soul_n be_v the_o formal_o intelligent_a principle_n fol._n 53._o n._n 14._o he_o say_v the_o sense_n in_o man_n be_v subject_v in_o matter_n as_o the_o proper_a subject_n where_o it_o be_v inherent_a that_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o a_o proper_a subject_n for_o its_o inhesion_n for_o material_a accident_n can_v be_v produce_v out_o of_o a_o spiritual_a subject_n matter_n unite_v to_o a_o sensitive_a soul_n be_v not_o therefore_o sensitive_a nor_o for_o be_v unite_v to_o a_o rational_a soul_n be_v it_o rational_a but_o the_o whole_a compositum_fw-la be_v by_o force_n and_o power_n of_o its_o form_n sensible_n or_o rational_a n._n 17._o and_o the_o material_a sensation_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o principium_fw-la sentiens_fw-la and_o yet_o may_v not_o be_v a_o recipient_a of_o the_o sensation_n n._n 17._o for_o the_o soul_n inform_v matter_n in_o which_o it_o be_v not_o inherent_a but_o unite_v to_o it_o n._n 19_o though_o a_o form_n be_v unite_v to_o a_o subject_a without_o be_v inherent_a in_o it_o yet_o no_o form_n can_v be_v inherent_a in_o a_o subject_a to_o which_o it_o be_v not_o unite_v and_o therefore_o sensation_n receive_v in_o matter_n and_o unite_a to_o the_o form_n must_v be_v likewise_o unite_v to_o the_o matter_n fol._n 54._o n._n 21._o sensation_n of_o brute_n be_v both_o subject_v and_o unite_v in_o their_o soul_n but_o sensation_n of_o man_n be_v only_o unite_v to_o their_o soul_n because_o that_o be_v here_o take_v for_o a_o immaterial_a spirit_n whence_o material_a agency_n can_v arise_v productive_a fol._n 54._o n._n 1._o it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o great_a question_n among_o the_o learned_a whether_o the_o faculty_n such_o as_o nutrition_n generation_n sense_n intellect_n be_v real_o distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n or_o not_o some_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o and_o some_o that_o they_o be_v other_o that_o the_o vegetative_a viz._n nutritive_a and_o generative_a be_v real_o the_o same_o with_o that_o sort_n of_o soul_n but_o that_o the_o sentient_a and_o intelligent_a faculty_n be_v real_o distinguish_v from_o those_o soul_n n._n 3._o the_o will_n if_o divide_v from_o the_o soul_n or_o intellect_n can_v have_v knowledge_n and_o therefore_o not_o freedom_n of_o act_v nor_o be_v any_o thing_n essential_o subsist_v of_o itself_o n._n 4._o but_o dependent_o upon_o the_o intellect_n or_o judgement_n and_o that_o be_v most_o knowng_a and_o free_a and_o by_o that_o voluntary_a faculty_n be_v determine_v fol._n 56._o n._n 11._o begin_v to_o cite_v argument_n for_o prove_v that_o the_o faculty_n or_o power_n be_v distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n and_o answer_v they_o fol._n 58._o n._n 1._o he_o raise_v another_o question_n viz._n grant_v such_o faculty_n real_o identify_v or_o to_o be_v real_o undistinguished_a from_o the_o soul_n whether_o then_o they_o be_v not_o formal_o distinguish_v from_o it_o n._n 2._o he_o say_v they_o first_o be_v formal_o distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o and_o than_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v so_o distinguish_v from_o the_o soul_n at_o least_o inadequate_a fol._n 59_o n._n 9_o question_n if_o there_o can_v be_v a_o intellective_a faculty_n without_o the_o voluntary_a attend_v it_o fol._n 65._o n._n 1._o anatomist_n do_v find_v that_o from_o the_o outward_a organ_n of_o the_o sense_n there_o go_v nerve_n which_o lead_v to_o the_o brain_n by_o which_o the_o vital_a spirit_n represent_v the_o image_n receive_v unto_o the_o common_a sense_n or_o inward_a faculty_n that_o can_v discern_v dog_n can_v bark_v without_o sensation_n thin_a in_o their_o sleep_n can_v be_v outward_a therefore_o they_o do_v so_o by_o force_n of_o their_o sense_n internal_a n._n 2._o say_v there_o be_v in_o man_n a_o sensual_a appetite_n beside_o his_o will_n and_o if_o so_o say_v he_o there_o must_v be_v also_o a_o know_a principle_n or_o power_n to_o guide_v it_o and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o common_a or_o inward_a sense_n but_o to_o this_o i_o do_v not_o agree_v but_o say_v the_o contest_v do_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v betwixt_o the_o will_n and_o the_o appetite_n but_o betwixt_o reason_n and_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n each_o endeadeavour_v to_o incline_v the_o judicial_a faculty_n to_o pass_v sentence_n on_o their_o behalf_n and_o the_o passion_n as_o wrath_n and_o fear_n do_v even_o strive_v by_o their_o violence_n to_o overpower_v and_o compel_v the_o judgement_n to_o pass_v its_o sentence_n on_o their_o side_n that_o the_o compositum_fw-la may_v obtain_v a_o present_a quiet_a which_o without_o give_v some_o degree_n of_o satisfaction_n to_o those_o rebellious_a and_o potent_a contestor_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a to_o do_v but_o upon_o a_o consent_n obtain_v the_o voluntary_a power_n call_v it_o will_v or_o appetite_n be_v ready_o subservient_fw-fr to_o such_o agreement_n of_o the_o judgement_n and_o have_v no_o power_n in_o nature_n to_o resist_v such_o a_o decree_n its_o dependence_n be_v upon_o the_o judgement_n as_o upon_o its_o natural_a guide_n and_o director_n without_o who_o consent_n she_o neither_o will_v or_o natural_o can_v act_v so_o as_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o make_v the_o intellect_n guide_v to_o the_o will_n and_o the_o common_a sense_n guide_n to_o the_o appetite_n but_o the_o one_o guidance_n of_o judgement_n will_v serve_v they_o both_o or_o there_o be_v in_o truth_n no_o real_a difference_n between_o they_o fol._n 65._o n._n 3._o there_o be_v divers_a act_n of_o the_o sense_n or_o sense_n internal_a 1._o it_o be_v perceptive_a of_o the_o object_n deliver_v by_o the_o sense_n and_o thence_o be_v call_v the_o common_a sense_n 2._o it_o conserves_n the_o species_n so_o deliver_v revolvendo_fw-la and_o be_v call_v the_o imagination_n 3._o it_o can_v know_v they_o and_o distinguish_v they_o one_o from_o another_o and_o thence_o be_v call_v the_o affirmative_a power_n 4._o it_o can_v compound_v and_o join_v these_o species_n together_o with_o what_o coherence_n or_o incoherence_n it_o please_v or_o as_o may_v happen_v and_o this_o be_v call_v the_o phantasy_n 5._o it_o record_v and_o remember_v such_o object_n and_o conserves_n thing_n apprehend_v for_o future_a time_n and_o uses_n and_o this_o be_v call_v the_o memory_n doubt_n may_v be_v whether_o a_o power_n or_o faculty_n shall_v be_v constitute_v for_o performance_n of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o office_n or_o that_o one_o common_a power_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o perform_v they_o all_o our_o author_n defend_v there_o be_v but_o one_o common_a internal_a sense_n act_v in_o all_o these_o performance_n if_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v distinct_a or_o several_a they_o all_o may_v proceed_v from_o one_o power_n and_o it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a to_o multiply_v power_n more_o than_o be_v needful_a especial_o for_o man_n of_o his_o judgement_n which_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o power_n in_o the_o compositum_fw-la which_o be_v real_o distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o this_o i_o be_o at_o agreement_n with_o he_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o power_n or_o faculty_n so_o real_o distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n as_o that_o they_o can_v act_v to_o effect_v without_o the_o excitation_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o soul_n hence_o the_o soul_n move_v the_o
hand_n foot_n heart_n and_o all_o member_n see_v in_o the_o eye_n hear_v in_o the_o ear_n express_v in_o the_o voice_n perceive_v in_o the_o common_a sense_n compare_v and_o compound_v in_o the_o phantasy_n record_v in_o the_o memory_n reason_n in_o the_o intellect_n and_o judge_n in_o his_o supreme_a seat_n or_o power_n it_o desire_v in_o the_o affection_n excite_v and_o act_n in_o the_o passion_n move_v all_o to_o the_o intend_a preservation_n propagation_n good_a and_o advantage_n of_o each_o of_o those_o faculty_n to_o which_o they_o most_o proper_o belong_v intend_v withal_o to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a compositum_fw-la hence_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n do_v derive_v from_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o reason_n and_o intellect_n and_o one_o of_o they_o be_v not_o natural_o subject_v unto_o the_o other_o but_o each_o of_o they_o have_v its_o faculty_n and_o power_n formal_o distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o but_o all_o identify_v in_o the_o soul_n so_o as_o they_o act_v free_o and_o without_o dependence_n of_o one_o upon_o another_o thus_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n as_o product_n of_o the_o same_o soul_n with_o the_o reason_n and_o intellect_n be_v natural_o at_o like_a freedom_n and_o not_o the_o former_a under_o cohersion_n of_o the_o latter_a the_o seat_n of_o judgement_n we_o place_v supreme_a in_o the_o microcosm_n endow_v that_o power_n with_o knowledge_n and_o discretion_n to_o the_o measure_n of_o that_o compositum_fw-la wherein_o it_o be_v this_o we_o say_v sway_v in_o the_o government_n which_o be_v monarchical_a and_o legal_a and_o the_o judgement_n can_v be_v corrupt_v or_o bead_v to_o act_v otherwise_o than_o appear_v to_o be_v for_o the_o most_o safety_n good_a and_o benefit_n of_o the_o compositum_fw-la all_o thing_n then_o offer_v or_o appear_v consider_v without_o consent_n of_o this_o the_o will_n or_o voluntary_a power_n can_v move_v or_o proceed_v to_o execution_n and_o yet_o the_o judgement_n often_o do_v consent_n with_o great_a measure_n of_o reluctancy_n press_v thereunto_o by_o the_o fury_n and_o force_n of_o passion_n viz._n wrath_n and_o fear_n or_o by_o the_o extreme_a troublesome_a and_o vexatious_a importunity_n of_o affection_n viz._n ambition_n covetousness_n and_o lust_n divide_v into_o that_o of_o nutrition_n and_o generation_n and_o these_o do_v so_o far_o ofttimes_o importune_v and_o press_v the_o judgement_n for_o its_o consent_n to_o their_o satisfaction_n as_o that_o upon_o the_o overlong_a delay_n or_o utter_v reject_v of_o their_o suit_n by_o the_o judgement_n or_o their_o final_a opposition_n from_o outward_a obstacle_n they_o be_v able_a to_o drive_v the_o whole_a compositum_fw-la along_o with_o they_o into_o frenzy_n despair_n disease_n and_o other_o ruinous_a calamity_n as_o we_o have_v before_o quote_v in_o the_o case_n of_o judas_n in_o which_o the_o judgement_n consent_v to_o a_o violent_a death_n rather_o than_o bear_v the_o sting_n and_o torment_n of_o his_o passion_n but_o this_o abate_v or_o take_v away_o the_o wonder_n upon_o the_o judgement_n be_v consent_v with_o reluctancy_n to_o execution_n of_o those_o action_n which_o itself_o do_v not_o approve_v thence_o we_o often_o do_v what_o we_o will_v not_o and_o do_v not_o what_o both_o reason_n and_o judgement_n desire_v to_o do_v and_o though_o s._n paul_n call_v this_o sin_n in_o we_o i_o take_v leave_n to_o think_v it_o be_v nature_n in_o we_o and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o adam_n before_o sin_n and_o be_v the_o original_a of_o sin_n in_o he_o and_o his_o wife_n as_o well_o as_o in_o we_o for_o when_o the_o woman_n see_v that_o the_o fruit_n be_v good_a for_o food_n and_o pleasant_a to_o the_o eye_n here_o be_v her_o lust_n tempt_v and_o prevail_v upon_o and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a here_o be_v her_o ambition_n tempt_v and_o prevail_v upon_o and_o these_o prevail_v upon_o her_o judgement_n which_o consent_v the_o voluntary_a power_n move_v the_o hand_n to_o take_v and_o chap_n to_o grind_v and_o devour_v that_o which_o from_o s._n paul_n authority_n christian_n have_v ever_o sine_z believe_v to_o be_v the_o root_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o bad_a inclination_n in_o man_n although_o by_o this_o they_o seem_v to_o grow_v from_o a_o high_a original_a viz._n nature_n in_o man_n in_o which_o we_o do_v not_o place_v the_o affection_n or_o passion_n under_o the_o regiment_n of_o reason_n naturally_n but_o take_v they_o for_o power_n coordinate_a excite_a and_o act_v by_o the_o soul_n and_o set_v under_o direction_n and_o government_n of_o the_o judgement_n upon_o which_o the_o voluntary_a power_n be_v attendant_z and_o we_o say_v with_o this_o our_o former_a author_n that_o the_o soul_n operation_n be_v assist_v or_o hinder_v by_o the_o fitness_n of_o matter_n and_o aptness_n of_o organ_n in_o the_o body_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o good_a temper_n and_o the_o organ_n apt_a and_o fit_a the_o soul_n be_v operation_n be_v more_o vigorous_a and_o effectual_a if_o the_o matter_n or_o organ_n be_v indispose_v the_o soul_n be_v operation_n be_v more_o infirm_a and_o feeble_a and_o if_o the_o instrument_n be_v corrupt_v or_o spoil_v the_o soul_n can_v operate_v at_o all_o by_o they_o as_o if_o the_o eye_n be_v out_o the_o soul_n can_v see_v if_o the_o memory_n be_v spoil_v it_o can_v remember_v if_o the_o intellect_n be_v craze_v the_o soul_n can_v reason_v if_o the_o seat_n of_o judgement_n be_v corrupt_v the_o government_n fail_v and_o all_o go_v out_o of_o order_n also_o the_o judgement_n may_v be_v more_o able_a and_o firm_a in_o some_o than_o in_o other_o according_a as_o the_o material_n be_v temper_v and_o the_o organ_n apt_a and_o fit_a and_o degree_n of_o perfection_n or_o imperfection_n come_v upon_o it_o by_o good_a or_o ill_a education_n custom_n company_n and_o other_o accident_n to_o which_o that_o and_o all_o other_o faculty_n power_n member_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v subject_a and_o they_o will_v be_v better_a and_o worse_o in_o the_o same_o person_n at_o divers_a time_n and_o upon_o several_a accident_n and_o occasion_n all_o which_o seem_v to_o evince_v a_o mutual_a dependence_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n one_o upon_o another_o the_o body_n without_o the_o soul_n be_v but_o a_o dead_a body_n void_a of_o motion_n sense_n and_o life_n and_o the_o soul_n without_o a_o body_n have_v no_o place_n where_o it_o can_v lay_v its_o head_n or_o set_v down_o its_o foot_n the_o body_n be_v its_o natural_a receptacle_n and_o there_o only_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v at_o home_n enliven_a the_o whole_a body_n incite_v each_o member_n organ_n and_o faculty_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o duty_n and_o operation_n for_o which_o by_o god_n and_o nature_n they_o be_v intend_v and_o appoint_v and_o act_v in_o they_o and_o by_o they_o all_o that_o have_v be_v before_o particular_o mention_v all_o this_o we_o say_v be_v perform_v by_o that_o flame_n of_o life_n kindle_v from_o heaven_n in_o the_o body_n blood_n and_o humour_n of_o adam_n and_o his_o wife_n and_o by_o they_o propagate_v to_o all_o future_a generation_n this_o flame_n pass_v in_o and_o with_o the_o blood_n throughout_o and_o into_o every_o small_a part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o body_n may_v it_o seem_v be_v easy_o conceive_v to_o act_v in_o all_o the_o member_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o vital_a sensitive_a and_o intellectual_a faculty_n thereunto_o join_v and_o in_o and_o by_o its_o organ_n perform_v work_v per_fw-la my_o and_o per_fw-la tout_fw-fr all_o that_o be_v act_v in_o the_o body_n and_o in_o every_o part_n and_o parcel_v of_o the_o same_o because_o this_o soul_n be_v spread_v and_o diffuse_v over_o all_o but_o how_o thing_n shall_v in_o this_o manner_n be_v perform_v by_o a_o immaterial_a and_o indivisible_a spirit_n or_o spark_n of_o a_o soul_n that_o its_o whole_n shall_v be_v and_o act_n in_o every_o member_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n and_o yet_o be_v but_o one_o for_o and_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o i_o conceiving_o to_o believe_v as_o that_o i_o rather_o incline_v to_o think_v it_o a_o unintelligible_a thing_n as_o we_o have_v say_v the_o soul_n act_v in_o every_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o inward_a as_o well_o as_o the_o outward_a so_o it_o seem_v it_o can_v act_v to_o its_o special_a purpose_n but_o in_o those_o place_n and_o organ_n to_o those_o purpose_v special_o appoint_v by_o nature_n it_o see_v in_o the_o eye_n and_o hear_v in_o the_o ear_n but_o it_o can_v see_v or_o hear_v without_o they_o nor_o by_o any_o other_o member_n or_o instrument_n it_o can_v perceive_v but_o in_o the_o common_a sense_n nor_o frame_v idea_n but_o in_o the_o phantasy_n nor_o remember_v but_o in_o and_o by_o the_o organ_n of_o memory_n
nor_o understand_v but_o in_o the_o intellect_n nor_o determine_v but_o in_o the_o judgement_n viz._n can_v act_v but_o in_o and_o by_o its_o proper_a organ_n of_o the_o body_n and_o as_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n and_o primary_n creation_n appoint_v to_o be_v thereunto_o qualify_v attendant_a and_o sufficient_a each_o for_o their_o proper_a performance_n so_o as_o although_o the_o soul_n do_v enliven_v and_o quicken_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o act_n in_o and_o by_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o it_o yet_o without_o the_o body_n it_o seem_v it_o can_v subsist_v nor_o in_o the_o body_n can_v act_v but_o by_o the_o bodily_a organ_n and_o according_a to_o their_o aptitude_n and_o power_n and_o the_o strength_n or_o weakness_n which_o it_o find_v in_o the_o bodily_a organ_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o evince_v with_o some_o clearness_n the_o strict_a and_o necessary_a union_n of_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o that_o they_o can_v act_v or_o even_o subsist_v but_o in_o and_o by_o the_o dependence_n which_o they_o have_v one_o upon_o the_o other_o fol._n 66._o nu._n 8._o our_o author_n say_v the_o seat_n of_o common_a sense_n be_v in_o the_o brain_n as_o galen_n have_v show_v fol._n 67._o nu._n 3._o he_o say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o internal_a know_v power_n in_o man_n and_o therefore_o but_o one_o appetite_n in_o he_o n._n 4._o and_o this_o he_o say_v reside_v in_o the_o head_n against_o the_o opinion_n both_o of_o aristotle_n and_o galen_n who_o place_n it_o in_o the_o heart_n fol._n 72._o n._n 2._o say_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o intellect_n into_o active_a and_o passive_a seem_v not_o real_a but_o only_o formal_a the_o same_o faculty_n appear_v active_a in_o order_n to_o some_o thing_n and_o passive_a in_o order_n to_o other_o thing_n fol._n 73._o n._n 3._o it_o be_v agency_n lie_v 1._o in_o take_v a_o view_n the_o idea_n in_o the_o phantasy_n 2._o in_o put_v they_o into_o a_o intelligible_a frame_n 3._o in_o collect_v a_o result_n from_o they_o fol._n 75._o n._n 2._o those_o who_o do_v not_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o intellect_n do_v say_v as_o they_o must_v needs_o that_o the_o intellect_n reside_v in_o the_o whole_a body_n but_o say_v he_o the_o intellective_a faculty_n be_v not_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n for_o the_o soul_n have_v not_o sense_n in_o the_o bone_n nor_o do_v it_o understand_v in_o the_o foot_n and_o it_o be_v by_o organ_n that_o the_o soul_n act_v the_o intellect_n and_o in_o it_o and_o this_o say_v he_o prove_v the_o dependence_n which_o the_o soul_n have_v upon_o matter_n for_o the_o exercise_v of_o its_o operation_n and_o therefore_o the_o soul_n unite_v to_o itself_o the_o intellect_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o body_n in_o which_o it_o find_v the_o proper_a disposition_n which_o be_v suitable_a and_o expedient_a for_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o power_n or_o faculty_n and_o therefore_o that_o faculty_n be_v in_o the_o brain_n and_o not_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n some_o folio_n raise_v and_o answer_v objection_n concern_v the_o intellect_n fol._n 82._o n._n 1._o divers_a philosopher_n he_o say_v and_o most_o divine_n do_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o intellective_a memory_n other_o say_v memory_n do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o common_a sense_n only_o and_o to_o the_o intellect_n but_o improper_o other_o say_v it_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o intellect_n for_o that_o the_o act_n of_o memory_n do_v more_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o intellect_n than_o to_o those_o of_o the_o common_a sense_n n._n 2._o but_o for_o himself_o who_o do_v not_o rea_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o faculty_n and_o the_o soul_n itself_o he_o do_v likewise_o not_o distinguish_v between_o the_o intellect_n and_o the_o memory_n any_o otherwise_o than_o be_v distinguish_v among_o the_o sense_n fancy_n will_n and_o like_o other_o faculty_n not_o real_o but_o formal_o fol._n 85._o n._n 16._o the_o soul_n while_o unite_v to_o the_o body_n use_v the_o intellect_n in_o perception_n of_o object_n dependent_o upon_o the_o phantasy_n and_o the_o external_n sense_n and_o perceiver_n more_o clear_o thing_n which_o have_v come_v from_o the_o sense_n to_o the_o phantasy_n than_o those_o which_o be_v frame_v by_o the_o phantasy_n itself_o fol._n 86._o n._n 1._o many_o hold_v that_o the_o intellect_n do_v first_o apprehend_v universals_z and_o then_o singulars_n and_o as_o many_o hold_n that_o singular_n be_v first_o understand_v and_o then_o universals_z fol._n 92._o n._n 9_o the_o intellect_n and_o will_n in_o creature_n exist_v be_v radical_o but_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o differ_v only_o in_o name_n and_o opinion_n and_o yet_o some_o thing_n be_v understand_v in_o order_n to_o be_v desire_v or_o avoid_v and_o require_v execution_n to_o be_v follow_v by_o the_o will_v according_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v also_o understand_v which_o neither_o excite_v nor_o incline_v the_o will_n one_o way_n or_o another_o so_o pass_v in_o the_o intellect_n without_o need_n or_o use_v of_o a_o voluntary_a faculty_n fol._n 103._o n._n 1._o act_n of_o the_o intellect_n be_v apprehension_n judgement_n and_o discourse_n by_o apprehension_n the_o object_n be_v only_o perceive_v and_o know_v judgement_n be_v a_o sentence_n pass_v upon_o the_o object_n ground_v upon_o such_o knowledge_n fol._n 142._o n._n 1._o it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o certain_a rule_n that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o will_n depend_v upon_o the_o knowledge_n or_o judgement_n but_o it_o be_v doubt_v whether_o this_o dependence_n be_v only_o for_o its_o illumination_n or_o both_o for_o that_o and_o its_o efficacy_n or_o operation_n and_o he_o say_v it_o be_v only_o direct_v by_o the_o judgement_n to_o which_o it_o have_v a_o moral_a application_n not_o determine_v by_o it_o n._n 2._o the_o will_n depend_v upon_o knowledge_n as_o its_o guide_n for_o that_o itself_o be_v but_o a_o blind_a power_n but_o the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o know_v power_n seem_v not_o of_o necessity_n for_o its_o operation_n n._n 5._o and_o yet_o the_o will_n be_v specificate_v from_o the_o sort_n of_o knowledge_n whereby_o it_o be_v guide_v n._n 1._o nihil_fw-la volitum_fw-la quin_fw-la praecognitum_fw-la the_o will_n follow_v not_o a_o unknown_a object_n but_o be_v direct_v by_o knowledge_n and_o grow_v from_o the_o same_o intrinsic_a principle_n with_o knowledge_n whence_o the_o will_n can_v natural_o be_v otherwise_o but_o dependent_a upon_o knowledge_n or_o judgement_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v a_o undoubted_a rule_n fol._n 144._o n._n 4._o it_o be_v moral_o impossible_a for_o a_o sober_a person_n and_o not_o surprise_v willing_o to_o fall_v into_o way_n or_o mean_n of_o execution_n fir_n do_v or_o obtain_v any_o thing_n without_o a_o judgement_n precede_v upon_o that_o thing_n both_o concern_v the_o beneficialness_n fitness_n and_o feasibleness_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v intend_v to_o be_v effect_v fol._n 145._o n._n 5._o there_o be_v no_o other_o act_n of_o the_o intellect_n require_v for_o set_v the_o will_n on_o work_n beside_o the_o apprehension_n or_o judgement_n n._n 7._o who_o empire_n he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o extend_v so_o far_o as_o to_o take_v away_o all_o freedom_n from_o the_o will._n and_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o that_o conclusion_n be_v or_o can_v be_v avoid_v viz._n that_o the_o freedom_n often_o apply_v to_o the_o will_n be_v original_o and_o real_o in_o the_o judgement_n upon_o who_o guidance_n and_o government_n the_o will_n be_v dependent_a fol._n 146._o n._n 7._o this_o be_v apparent_o to_o take_v away_o all_o freedom_n from_o the_o will_n and_o to_o put_v the_o reins_o say_v i_o into_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o power_n n._n 8._o there_o be_v no_o act_n of_o empire_n in_o the_o intellect_n other_o than_o the_o judgement_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o grant_v to_o the_o thomist_n that_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o judgement_n be_v of_o such_o nature_n as_o to_o take_v away_o all_o liberty_n from_o the_o will_n but_o say_v it_o be_v rather_o a_o guide_n to_o the_o will_n than_o a_o predeterminer_n of_o it_o and_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o a_o violence_n of_o power_n or_o empire_n in_o the_o judgement_n but_o to_o a_o natural_a or_o easy_a power_n where_o the_o sway_n and_o guidance_n be_v such_o as_o it_o determine_v according_a to_o nature_n without_o impose_v upon_o the_o will_v any_o restraint_n or_o constraint_n obey_v free_o by_o the_o will_n to_o which_o it_o leave_v all_o the_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n which_o be_v natural_a to_o it_o fol._n 155._o n._n 1._o he_o say_v act_n of_o natural_a power_n or_o command_n though_o they_o be_v efficacious_a in_o their_o nature_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o infringe_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o power_n act_v by_o they_o or_o that_o act_n under_o they_o this_o he_o quote_v as_o a_o more_o late_a opinion_n
master_n in_o philosophy_n that_o they_o answer_v and_o solve_v all_o argument_n which_o may_v be_v allege_v against_o this_o tenet_n of_o the_o immortality_n n._n 7._o he_o say_v let_v the_o learned_a search_n into_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o this_o immortality_n which_o all_o confess_v to_o be_v take_v principal_o from_o god_n special_a providence_n for_o reward_v the_o good_a and_o punish_v the_o wicked_a in_o a_o future_a state_n n._n 8._o go_v on_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n n._n 9_o mention_n only_o that_o some_o do_v reason_n for_o it_o from_o man_n capacity_n to_o apprehend_v eternal_a thing_n and_o to_o desire_v and_o expect_v they_o but_o do_v not_o insist_v upon_o such_o argument_n or_o so_o much_o as_o say_v that_o they_o be_v firm_a n._n 1._o he_o discourse_v concern_v power_n and_o act_n of_o soul_n separate_v with_o little_a assurance_n and_o say_v they_o have_v a_o innate_a inclination_n and_o appetite_n again_o to_o inform_v and_o to_o be_v unite_v to_o their_o proper_a matter_n upon_o this_o our_o author_n we_o may_v observe_v a_o love_n and_o inclination_n to_o truth_n somewhat_o constrain_v by_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o obedience_n and_o profession_n and_o the_o place_n of_o his_o abide_v and_o conversation_n but_o in_o thing_n not_o forbid_v he_o he_o seem_v congruous_a enough_o to_o the_o natural_a truth_n and_o reason_n of_o thing_n i_o meet_v with_o a_o pamphlet_n print_v 1645._o in_o english_a entitle_v the_o prerogative_n of_o man_n or_o the_o soul_n immortality_n the_o author_n not_o name_v but_o learned_a full_a of_o quotation_n concernine_v our_o present_a point_n page_n 9_o he_o say_v the_o old_a and_o great_a philosopher_n have_v agree_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o this_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v he_o cite_v cicero_n permanere_fw-la animos_fw-la arbitramur_fw-la but_o what_o they_o then_o be_v and_o whither_o they_o go_v we_o be_v yet_o to_o learn_v pag._n 13._o cites_n marcus_n aurelius_n emperor_n as_o body_n die_v be_v turn_v to_o earth_n and_o dust_n by_o degree_n so_o soul_n carry_v into_o the_o air_n be_v liquify_v and_o conjoin_v to_o the_o great_a soul_n of_o the_o world_n which_o say_v the_o author_n be_v nothing_o but_o god_n cites_n tacitus_n in_o vita_fw-la agric._n if_o to_o good_a spirit_n there_o may_v be_v any_o place_n remain_v if_o great_a soul_n extinguish_v not_o with_o their_o body_n may_v thou_o rest_v in_o peace_n cites_n macrobius_n who_o after_o recite_v sundry_a opinion_n touch_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n conclude_v that_o the_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v incorporeal_a and_o immortal_a have_v prevail_v over_o all_o the_o other_o opinion_n and_o this_o we_o do_v easy_o grant_v page_n 10._o he_o grant_v aristotle_n do_v not_o declare_v himself_o in_o this_o point_n but_o think_v he_o forbear_v so_o to_o do_v because_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o dispose_v of_o such_o soul_n after_o death_n page_n 14._o he_o say_v it_o import_v little_a that_o dicoearchus_fw-la aristoxenus_n pherecrates_n tertullian_n sextus_n empericus_n and_o some_o other_o learned_a man_n have_v think_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v mortal_a for_o that_o some_o philosopher_n have_v hold_v very_o odd_a opinion_n he_o say_v the_o term_n of_o soul_n be_v take_v for_o a_o exhalation_n of_o the_o pure_a blood_n sometime_o for_o a_o rule_v spiritual_a intellect_n and_o sometime_o for_o the_o immaterial_a immortal_a part_n of_o man._n page_n 15._o he_o say_v increase_n or_o diminution_n of_o knowledge_n grow_v from_o the_o difference_n advantage_n or_o alteration_n in_o the_o organ_n and_o thence_o a_o man_n understand_v better_a than_o a_o child_n a_o learned_a than_o a_o illiterate_a and_o a_o diligent_a better_o than_o a_o negligent_a person_n and_o this_o we_o agree_v to_o with_o this_o addition_n that_o the_o soul_n or_o flame_n of_o life_n have_v its_o vicissitude_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n and_o its_o organ_n page_n 16._o he_o say_v some_o act_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v independent_a of_o the_o body_n and_o whole_o inorganical_a as_o divers_a learned_a author_n have_v show_v this_o show_v like_o a_o open_a blot_n in_o his_o table_n for_o this_o thing_n be_v the_o most_o precise_a point_n in_o issue_n prove_v this_o and_o carry_v the_o cause_n and_o that_o in_o this_o point_n he_o shall_v shuffle_v we_o off_o without_o offer_n of_o one_o quotation_n or_o one_o reason_n in_o proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n infer_v he_o can_v find_v nothing_o to_o say_v in_o it_o that_o be_v satisfactory_a to_o his_o own_o reason_n or_o likely_a to_o satisfy_v other_o inquisitive_a people_n p._n 17._o say_v a_o immortal_a soul_n can_v be_v generate_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o dependent_a upon_o matter_n or_o the_o be_v of_o a_o compositum_fw-la and_o this_o will_v be_v true_a if_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o viz._n that_o man_n soul_n be_v immaterial_a but_o that_o still_o want_v proof_n and_o so_o the_o argument_n proceed_v ex_fw-la non_fw-la concessis_fw-la he_o cite_v a_o argument_n against_o his_o opinion_n viz._n the_o anatomy_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n show_v their_o body_n to_o be_v alike_o and_o their_o sense_n affection_n memory_n fantasy_n be_v find_v to_o be_v alike_o and_o they_o have_v each_o a_o intellect_n and_o common_a sense_n some_o more_o and_o some_o less_o perfect_a whence_o then_o can_v such_o difference_n arise_v between_o they_o in_o nature_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o beast_n must_v be_v mortal_a and_o those_o of_o man_n immortal_a and_o this_o carry_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o former_a and_o main_a objection_n and_o be_v put_v by_o our_o author_n upon_o himself_o it_o seem_v he_o shall_v make_v a_o substantial_a answer_n to_o it_o but_o all_o the_o answer_v he_o give_v be_v this_o viz._n we_o do_v collect_v from_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o of_o beast_n that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o gradual_a but_o a_o essential_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o that_o their_o be_v like_a do_v not_o prove_v they_o the_o same_o the_o last_o we_o grant_v and_o for_o what_o he_o will_v collect_v it_o may_v be_v what_o he_o please_v but_o need_v be_v no_o rule_n to_o other_o but_o here_o be_v no_o reason_n show_v why_o or_o wherefore_o he_o make_v such_o a_o collection_n nor_o how_o that_o must_v needs_o or_o can_v be_v so_o do_v p._n 18._o he_o offer_v as_o some_o proof_n the_o difference_n between_o the_o faculty_n of_o man_n sensual_a affection_n and_o their_o reason_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o say_v a_o man_n have_v two_o soul_n and_o that_o affection_n proceed_v from_o one_o of_o they_o and_o reason_n from_o the_o other_o but_o pretend_v a_o essential_a difference_n between_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o same_o soul_n which_o seem_v absurd_a in_o nature_n and_o he_o may_v with_o as_o good_a reason_n say_v that_o love_n and_o hatred_n in_o man_n shall_v infer_v a_o specifical_a difference_n in_o his_o soul_n pag._n 25._o he_o affirm_v generation_n can_v produce_v a_o humane_a soul_n but_o argue_v ex_fw-la non_fw-la concessis_fw-la suppose_v it_o immaterial_a and_o than_o what_o he_o say_v be_v true_a but_o it_o beg_v the_o point_n in_o question_n and_o which_o will_v not_o be_v grant_v he_o p._n 26._o say_v reason_n can_v be_v generate_v no_o more_o can_v sense_n but_o the_o organ_n of_o both_o may_v be_v so_o and_o the_o power_n and_o spirit_n that_o actuate_v they_o ay_o but_o say_v he_o reason_n and_o judgement_n can_v and_o do_v at_o time_n act_v inorganical_o this_o have_v be_v say_v before_o but_o neither_o then_o nor_o now_o be_v nor_o be_v prove_v or_o offer_v to_o be_v so_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o believe_v pag._n 26._o say_v generation_n be_v not_o perform_v by_o act_n of_o wit_n or_o understanding_n but_o those_o of_o vegetation_n and_o sense_n and_o a_o soul_n do_v not_o generate_v a_o soul_n still_o suppose_v a_o non_fw-la supponendum_fw-la that_o a_o soul_n be_v immaterial_a and_o separately_z subsist_v but_o take_v it_o for_o a_o material_a spirit_n the_o produce_v it_o by_o generation_n be_v easy_a and_o natural_a pag._n 27._o it_o follow_v say_v he_o that_o because_o a_o man_n do_v not_o generate_v with_o his_o mind_n but_o his_o body_n therefore_o his_o body_n be_v corruptible_a and_o his_o mind_n or_o soul_n be_v immortal_a it_o seem_v this_o needs_o no_o answer_n pag._n 28._o say_v the_o learned_a sennertus_n a_o famous_a physician_n be_v move_v by_o certain_a reason_n which_o he_o can_v not_o overcome_v to_o think_v the_o soul_n be_v generate_v and_o that_o the_o seed_n itself_o be_v animate_v with_o a_o humane_a soul_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o beast_n but_o this_o physician_n and_o justus_n lipsius_n call_v before_o the_o divine_n and_o tell_v the_o consent_n of_o divine_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_a they_o declare_v their_o resolution_n to_o obey_v the_o order_n of_o
that_o it_o be_v a_o vegetation_n hold_v upon_o the_o part_n of_o the_o matter_n only_o and_o have_v in_o it_o no_o performance_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o soul_n and_o yet_o it_o fashion_v a_o organical_a body_n to_o make_v it_o fit_a for_o the_o reception_n of_o a_o soul_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v nothing_o of_o this_o either_o prove_v or_o grant_v p._n 40._o he_o tell_v we_o what_o dr._n sennertus_n say_v in_o his_o book_n viz._n he_o hold_v it_o probable_a that_o the_o soul_n proceed_v from_o procreation_n and_o that_o from_o the_o first_o instant_a of_o the_o conception_n the_o seed_n be_v animate_v with_o a_o rational_a soul_n also_o that_o nothing_o create_v be_v immortal_a by_o a_o principle_n of_o nature_n but_o only_o by_o the_o free_a will_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n also_o that_o by_o force_n of_o god_n direction_n and_o the_o word_n increase_v and_o multiply_v there_o be_v give_v power_n to_o every_o soul_n to_o multiply_v another_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o position_n our_o writer_n say_v that_o by_o the_o doctor_n be_v leave_a it_o infer_v the_o soul_n mortality_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v generate_v be_v corruptible_a and_o must_v go_v out_o as_o it_o come_v in_o and_o this_o be_v easy_o grant_v he_o to_o the_o next_o he_o say_v it_o be_v neither_o true_a likely_a nor_o philosophical_a for_o by_o this_o a_o fly_n may_v be_v as_o immortal_a as_o a_o soul_n and_o this_o be_v also_o grant_v he_o as_o to_o the_o seed_n have_v in_o it_o the_o principle_n of_o produce_v a_o reasonable_a soul_n the_o writer_n demand_v p._n 41._o what_o become_v of_o all_o those_o soul_n contain_v in_o misspend_a seed_n or_o ineffectual_a coition_n innumerable_a soul_n say_v he_o must_v so_o be_v lose_v and_o perish_v he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v body_n also_o for_o there_o be_v no_o soul_n till_o there_o be_v a_o body_n they_o be_v both_o equal_o in_o the_o seed_n and_o but_o potential_o but_o they_o rise_v and_o grow_v together_o out_o of_o the_o same_o root_n and_o power_n and_o together_o and_o if_o their_o principle_n the_o seed_n perish_v nothing_o be_v lose_v but_o itself_o any_o more_o than_o man_n can_v say_v when_o a_o swine_n eat_v acorn_n that_o he_o have_v eat_v up_o so_o many_o oak_n then_o he_o demand_v why_o do_v the_o soul_n depart_v from_o the_o body_n but_o because_o it_o leave_v to_o be_v organical_a i_o may_v as_o well_o ask_v why_o the_o body_n depart_v from_o the_o soul_n and_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o either_o do_v depart_v from_o the_o other_o until_o death_n they_o depart_v and_o that_o they_o can_v help_v it_o durum_fw-la telum_fw-la necessitas_fw-la and_o that_o be_v the_o common_a or_o only_a cause_n why_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v part_v or_o rather_o do_v cease_v to_o be_v and_o it_o seem_v not_o likely_a that_o when_o they_o be_v part_v there_o remain_v any_o more_o a_o soul_n than_o a_o body_n the_o man_n be_v depart_v the_o body_n be_v turn_v to_o a_o carcase_n and_o what_o become_v of_o the_o soul_n no_o man_n natural_o can_v tell_v unless_o it_o extinguish_v with_o the_o vital_a flame_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o body_n thus_o many_o thousand_o year_n be_v pass_v in_o the_o world_n age_n and_o yet_o man_n be_v but_o as_o wise_a as_o solomon_n leave_v we_o in_o that_o point_n and_o as_o man_n have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o his_o time_n for_o if_o former_a time_n have_v know_v it_o he_o can_v not_o have_v doubt_v as_o he_o do_v aristotle_n who_o live_v about_o 700_o year_n after_o solomon_n and_o doubt_v and_o search_v in_o this_o point_n as_o that_o wise_a king_n do_v yet_o he_o can_v not_o resolve_v but_o have_v leave_v posterity_n under_o the_o same_o doubt_n that_o solomon_n do_v who_o know_v the_o difference_n or_o that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a difference_n between_o the_o nature_n or_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n in_o point_n of_o their_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o death_n our_o writer_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v the_o father_n office_n to_o provide_v a_o body_n for_o his_o child_n soul_n which_o he_o perform_v by_o his_o deputy_n seed_n for_o my_o part_n i_o shall_v rather_o have_v think_v this_o to_o have_v be_v more_o proper_o the_o office_n of_o the_o mother_n but_o he_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o how_o this_o be_v natural_o perform_v the_o seed_n say_v he_o have_v a_o natural_a strength_n and_o cunning_a to_o frame_v a_o body_n for_o the_o child_n soul_n do_v by_o the_o form_n of_o the_o seed_n without_o any_o animation_n of_o it_o with_o a_o soul_n and_o so_o do_v a_o akron_n by_o virtue_n derive_v from_o the_o tree_n upon_o which_o it_o grow_v and_o the_o form_v virtue_n be_v the_o seed_n own_o form_n excite_v and_o assist_v by_o the_o breed_n and_o connatural_a warmth_n of_o the_o maternal_a body_n and_o work_n as_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o cock_n impregnate_v the_o egg_n with_o a_o chicken_n and_o yet_o say_v he_o be_v it_o probable_a that_o in_o so_o small_a a_o seed_n as_o come_v from_o the_o cock_n the_o soul_n or_o essence_n of_o a_o cock_n shall_v be_v resident_a why_o not_o say_v i_o as_o well_o as_o the_o vegetative_a soul_n and_o essence_n of_o a_o oak_n in_o a_o akron_n and_o to_o what_o he_o last_v before_o affirm_v that_o the_o father_n provide_v a_o body_n for_o his_o child_n soul_n he_o offer_v no_o proof_n and_o for_o aught_o appear_v he_o may_v as_o true_o prepare_v a_o soul_n for_o the_o body_n as_o a_o body_n for_o the_o soul_n he_o say_v the_o form_v virtue_n be_v the_o seed_n own_o form_n i_o say_v the_o quicken_a virtue_n be_v as_o proper_o in_o the_o seed_n as_o the_o form_v virtue_n and_o nothing_o can_v natural_o enliven_v the_o body_n but_o the_o soul_n and_o therefore_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n proceed_v equal_o and_o natural_o from_o the_o generation_n and_o efficiency_n of_o the_o parent_n without_o any_o need_n of_o new_a creation_n of_o soul_n in_o such_o case_n p._n 42._o our_o writer_n agree_v the_o effect_n of_o sennertus_n assertion_n upon_o the_o word_n increase_v and_o multiply_v but_o not_o by_o derive_v the_o young_a soul_n from_o the_o elder_a but_o by_o the_o do_n of_o some_o act_n out_o of_o which_o such_o form_n shall_v connatural_o flow_v as_o material_a form_n he_o say_v they_o grow_v by_o resultancy_n but_o the_o immaterial_a by_o creation_n from_o a_o high_a cause_n which_o creation_n be_v to_o follow_v and_o be_v due_a by_o a_o regular_a ordination_n and_o existence_n of_o nature_n and_o so_o they_o may_v be_v true_o generate_v viz._n give_v and_o communicate_v though_o not_o make_v by_o the_o force_n of_o generation_n i_o say_v this_o act_n do_v out_o of_o which_o the_o humane_a form_n shall_v connatural_o flow_v or_o follow_v must_v be_v the_o natural_a coition_n of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o child_n be_v by_o this_o tenet_n immaterial_a must_v be_v create_v as_o a_o thing_n due_a by_o regular_a ordination_n and_o exigence_n of_o nature_n to_o such_o fact_n of_o coition_n i_o demand_v from_o what_o original_a he_o have_v copy_v out_o the_o regular_a ordination_n here_o deliver_v he_o quote_v no_o authority_n in_o the_o point_n nor_o offer_v any_o reason_n for_o the_o maintain_v it_o therefore_o we_o take_v it_o for_o a_o bold_a romance_n invent_v by_o himself_o for_o support_v his_o tenet_n of_o the_o soul_n immateriality_n the_o dissenter_n from_o which_o have_v no_o need_n of_o this_o conceit_n agree_v that_o the_o essential_a part_n constituent_a of_o the_o man_n viz._n his_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v generate_v and_o take_v growth_n together_o till_o they_o attain_v to_o their_o perfection_n of_o degree_n and_o then_o decline_v decay_n and_o perish_v according_o maintain_v a_o strict_a union_n and_o copartnership_n both_o in_o weal_n and_o in_o woe_n till_o death_n dissolve_v and_o finish_v their_o association_n man_n thus_o persuade_v have_v no_o need_n of_o our_o friend_n be_v invent_v regular_a ordination_n or_o exigence_n of_o nature_n but_o may_v reasonable_o fix_v upon_o it_o the_o term_n of_o a_o bare_a and_o a_o needless_a fiction_n p._n 42._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o sennertus_n argue_v if_o the_o parent_n do_v not_o give_v the_o form_n viz._n the_o soul_n than_o they_o do_v not_o generate_v the_o man_n but_o they_o do_v generate_v the_o man_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v give_v the_o soul_n also_o and_o unless_o they_o do_v communicate_v the_o soul_n it_o can_v be_v true_o say_v that_o like_a do_v generate_v its_o like_a our_o friend_n answer_v the_o parent_n do_v give_v and_o communicate_v both_o form_n and_o matter_n but_o without_o produce_v either_o of_o they_o certain_a it_o be_v they_o give_v the_o matter_n and_o as_o certain_a that_o they_o do_v
have_v no_o participation_n thereof_o with_o she_o or_o that_o she_o do_v or_o can_v act_v any_o thing_n or_o produce_v any_o effect_n without_o the_o spirit_n member_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n which_o it_o seem_v can_v be_v exclude_v from_o participate_v with_o the_o soul_n in_o all_o its_o affection_n operation_n and_o motion_n no_o more_o than_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v unconcern_v in_o the_o health_n accident_n rejoice_n or_o suffering_n of_o the_o body_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o other_o question_n or_o query_n which_o if_o it_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o affirmative_a will_v strong_o infer_v the_o soul_n materiality_n viz._n concern_v the_o mode_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o mankind_n if_o the_o parent_n do_v generate_v a_o child_n like_o unto_o themselves_o consist_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o form_n or_o such_o a_o like_a soul_n and_o body_n as_o themselves_o be_v if_o the_o child_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v generate_v by_o the_o parent_n as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o if_o the_o thing_n have_v be_v prove_v or_o can_v and_o shall_v be_v prove_v effectual_o so_o to_o be_v do_v a_o very_a strong_a inference_n and_o argument_n may_v thence_o be_v draw_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o constitution_n with_o the_o body_n material_o and_o natural_o extinguishable_a by_o dissolution_n of_o the_o compositum_fw-la man_n who_o constituent_a part_n they_o be_v for_o it_o seem_v generation_n and_o corruption_n do_v mutuo_fw-la se_fw-la ponere_fw-la &_o tollere_fw-la what_o grow_v from_o generation_n have_v a_o natural_a tendency_n to_o growth_n strength_n decay_n and_o dissolution_n if_o therefore_o one_o man_n do_v generate_v another_o like_o himself_o and_o so_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n it_o seem_v likely_a that_o what_o come_v from_o generation_n be_v under_o a_o clear_a capacity_n of_o corruption_n if_o it_o be_v not_o under_o a_o necessity_n of_o terminate_n by_o that_o mean_n we_o be_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n convince_v that_o the_o parent_n do_v procreate_v child_n like_o themselves_o both_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o that_o therefore_o both_o those_o part_n have_v in_o nature_n and_o reason_n a_o capacity_n or_o a_o tendency_n if_o not_o a_o sort_n of_o necessity_n to_o terminate_v in_o corruption_n so_o as_o we_o do_v not_o perceive_v that_o argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n or_o nature_n and_o hitherto_o produce_v be_v strong_a enough_o to_o evince_v that_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v immaterial_a or_o self-subsistent_a after_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o person_n and_o corruption_n of_o that_o body_n to_o which_o it_o be_v knit_v and_o which_o whilst_o life_n last_v it_o do_v inform_v direct_a and_o actuate_v and_o herewith_o shall_v be_v conclude_v the_o disquisition_n intend_v concern_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n found_v upon_o the_o ground_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n and_o try_v by_o the_o argument_n extract_v from_o they_o we_o proceed_v from_o they_o to_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o argument_n offer_v for_o proof_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n draw_v by_o our_o opposer_n from_o the_o ground_n of_o moral_a congruity_n there_o must_v be_v say_v they_o a_o reward_n and_o punishment_n future_a to_o this_o life_n of_o this_o the_o corrupt_a carcase_n be_v by_o no_o possibility_n in_o nature_n capable_a and_o therefore_o the_o soul_n must_v needs_o have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n that_o thereby_o future_a reward_n and_o punishment_n may_v have_v a_o proper_a subject_a to_o work_v upon_o and_o this_o sort_n of_o argument_n be_v propound_v and_o handle_v by_o baxter_n in_o his_o quote_v book_n at_o p._n 34._o reach_v thence_o to_o 40._o and_o by_o dr._n more_o in_o his_o 18_o chap._n of_o the_o quote_v book_n pag._n 314._o to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o chapter_n and_o by_o sir_n k._n digby_n in_o the_o 10_o paragraph_n of_o his_o 9th_o chapter_n and_o all_o our_o author_n have_v main_o insist_v upon_o this_o argument_n in_o place_n before_o quote_v and_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o upon_o very_o good_a and_o unanswerable_a reason_n such_o as_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n ground_v itself_o only_o upon_o nature_n and_o reason_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v sufficient_a reply_n unto_o or_o to_o overcome_v this_o we_o look_v upon_o as_o the_o potent_a and_o prevalent_a argument_n whereby_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o in_o all_o the_o age_n of_o it_o hitherto_o have_v be_v draw_v and_o even_o force_v to_o consent_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n and_o to_o invent_v elysium_n fortunate_a island_n and_o paradise_n for_o the_o good_a also_o tartarum_n and_o barathrum_n and_o gehenna_n for_o the_o wicked_a soul_n depart_v the_o silly_a american_n have_v not_o want_v their_o more_o crude_a conceit_n viz._n that_o in_o place_n beyond_o their_o mountain_n the_o good_a soul_n sing_v and_o dance_v among_o grove_n and_o fountain_n and_o the_o wicked_a one_o be_v relegated_a to_o denn_n and_o cave_n and_o other_o dark_a and_o disconsolate_a place_n suit_v with_o their_o demerit_n thus_o from_o the_o necessity_n of_o future_a recompense_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n have_v be_v spread_v and_o receive_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n far_o and_o wide_a without_o stint_n in_o place_n or_o stay_v in_o time_n all_o nation_n and_o all_o religion_n have_v accept_v of_o this_o opinion_n and_o it_o have_v hitherto_o prevail_v among_o they_o and_o thus_o may_v their_o argument_n be_v frame_v it_o be_v moral_o congruous_a among_o all_o man_n that_o good_a man_n and_o action_n shall_v be_v reward_v and_o recompense_v and_o that_o bad_a man_n and_o action_n shall_v be_v punish_v but_o man_n find_v and_o see_v it_o fall_v out_o very_o often_o that_o reward_n and_o punishment_n be_v not_o so_o distribute_v in_o this_o world_n ergo_fw-la moral_a congruity_n require_v and_o that_o prove_v there_o must_v be_v a_o future_a state_n wherein_o man_n and_o their_o action_n shall_v be_v reward_v and_o recompense_v according_a to_o their_o desert_n this._n man_n can_v reasonable_o refuse_v to_o grant_v and_o then_o ex_fw-la concessis_fw-la it_o may_v be_v further_o argue_v man_n be_v constitute_v but_o of_o two_o essential_a part_n viz._n his_o body_n and_o his_o soul_n his_o body_n die_v corrupt_v and_o turn_v to_o dust_n and_o so_o become_v incapable_a of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n in_o a_o future_a state_n ergo_fw-la if_o the_o man_n and_o his_o action_n be_v reward_v or_o punish_v in_o a_o future_a state_n he_o must_v receive_v the_o effect_n of_o such_o reward_n or_o punishment_n in_o that_o part_n of_o he_o which_o be_v repute_v capable_a and_o may_v by_o possibility_n have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o the_o man_n death_n viz._n in_o his_o soul_n and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v the_o soul_n must_v have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o death_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o same_o hold_v true_a negative_a there_o be_v nothing_o of_o man_n to_o be_v reward_v or_o punish_v in_o a_o future_a state_n but_o his_o body_n or_o his_o soul_n but_o the_o body_n in_o a_o state_n of_o dissolution_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n and_o if_o the_o soul_n extinguish_v in_o death_n then_o be_v there_o nothing_o of_o the_o man_n lest_o capable_a of_o receive_v reward_n or_o punishment_n in_o a_o state_n future_a to_o this_o life_n ergo_fw-la that_o the_o rule_n of_o moral_a congruity_n may_v stand_v and_o be_v maintain_v in_o the_o world_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n must_v needs_o enjoy_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n capable_a of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n after_o death_n and_o the_o dissolution_n and_o corruption_n of_o his_o body_n this_o argument_n appear_v irrefragable_a not_o to_o be_v confute_v or_o effectual_o answer_v by_o the_o uttermost_a strength_n of_o man_n reason_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v nothing_o strange_a that_o it_o have_v prevail_v with_o jew_n and_o gentile_n mahometan_n and_o christian_n induce_v they_o general_o to_o belive_o a_o separate_a state_n of_o humane_a soul_n after_o death_n and_o it_o be_v still_o use_v by_o all_o our_o author_n for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n at_o this_o time_n we_o still_o agree_v that_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n can_v by_o the_o bare_a wit_n or_o reason_n of_o mankind_n be_v answer_v and_o refute_v but_o yet_o we_o say_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v full_o so_o answer_v by_o deduction_n out_o of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n and_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o that_o by_o argument_n thence_o to_o be_v take_v both_o negative_a and_o positive_a and_o though_o we_o do_v main_o rely_v upon_o our_o positive_a argument_n on_o this_o behalf_n yet_o it_o seem_v not_o requisite_a to_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n the_o negative_a argument_n which_o may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o our_o holy_a
and_o free_a from_o all_o degree_n of_o exception_n we_o take_v then_o the_o case_n concern_v the_o salvation_n and_o damnation_n of_o mankind_n to_o be_v thus_o far_o clear_a that_o the_o great_a part_n by_o far_o do_v go_v in_o the_o broad_a way_n and_o pass_v through_o the_o wide_a gate_n and_o but_o a_o few_o in_o comparison_n do_v find_v out_o and_o walk_v in_o the_o narrow_a way_n and_o so_o pass_v through_o the_o straight_a gate_n and_o upon_o it_o we_o demand_v to_o have_v god_n proceed_n upon_o this_o point_n reconcile_v and_o make_v coherent_a with_o the_o justice_n and_o especial_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n how_o be_v it_o coherent_a to_o rule_n of_o justice_n and_o goodness_n among_o man_n that_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n shall_v so_o act_v in_o and_o dispose_v of_o second_o cause_n as_o that_o the_o eternal_a destruction_n of_o vast_o the_o great_a number_n of_o humane_a soul_n shall_v final_o fall_v out_o and_o follow_v thereupon_o and_o that_o according_a to_o his_o will_n the_o huge_o great_a part_n of_o man_n body_n and_o soul_n shall_v final_o fall_v into_o everlasting_a torment_n to_o make_v god_n proceed_n in_o this_o point_n coherent_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o justice_n and_o goodness_n among_o man_n be_v the_o thing_n in_o demand_n and_o which_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o great_a degree_n of_o happiness_n to_o see_v well_o and_o solid_o perform_v but_o this_o some_o quick_a man_n will_v soon_o say_v and_o perhaps_o think_v may_v be_v very_o easy_o do_v by_o say_v that_o this_o course_n of_o proceed_v be_v not_o of_o god_n make_v but_o come_v upon_o mankind_n by_o accident_n viz._n by_o the_o disobedience_n and_o voluntary_a sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o original_a of_o all_o these_o sin_n and_o evil_n upon_o man._n but_o to_o this_o answer_n may_v be_v reply_v that_o by_o revelation_n we_o know_v god_n be_v conversant_a with_o our_o first_o parent_n in_o the_o garden_n and_o if_o that_o have_v not_o be_v tell_v we_o we_o know_v from_o nature_n and_o reason_n and_o other_o revelation_n that_o god_n fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o be_v omnipresent_v he_o be_v therefore_o in_o paradise_n at_o that_o time_n and_o know_v when_o the_o devil_n go_v about_o to_o possess_v himself_o of_o the_o serpent_n a_o fact_n which_o he_o can_v have_v hinder_v by_o say_v nay_o he_o know_v the_o devil_n design_n in_o it_o and_o can_v have_v prevent_v its_o execution_n or_o can_v have_v support_v our_o parent_n against_o the_o force_n of_o satan_n temptation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n to_o use_v any_o of_o these_o or_o any_o other_o prevention_n of_o that_o calamitiy_n but_o the_o thing_n be_v do_v the_o devil_n design_v succeed_v and_o our_o parent_n sin_v all_o according_a tot_fw-mi he_o will_v providence_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n and_o according_a to_o our_o old_a and_o approve_a rule_n of_o morality_n malum_fw-la qui_fw-la potest_fw-la &_o non_fw-la prohibet_fw-la jubet_fw-la he_o who_o can_v hinder_v especial_o easy_o hinder_v evil_a from_o be_v do_v and_o will_v not_o do_v not_o hinder_v it_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o crime_n as_o well_o if_o not_o as_o much_o as_o he_o that_o act_v it_o and_o we_o desire_v god_n may_v be_v fair_o bring_v off_o from_o have_v act_v incoherent_o to_o this_o our_o approve_a rule_n in_o morality_n evident_a it_o be_v he_o know_v of_o all_o that_o be_v do_v and_o know_v what_o will_v follow_v he_o can_v easy_o have_v prevent_v all_o or_o any_o part_n of_o this_o if_o he_o have_v please_v but_o he_o do_v not_o will_v not_o do_v it_o whence_o it_o seem_v clear_o inferable_a it_o be_v god_n will_n that_o all_o thing_n shall_v fall_v out_o as_o they_o do_v that_o our_o parent_n shall_v sin_v and_o their_o posterity_n shall_v be_v infect_v and_o be_v sinner_n and_o be_v sufferer_n except_o some_o in_o comparison_n few_o who_o it_o will_v please_v god_n to_o call_v out_o from_o the_o vast_a number_n of_o people_n intend_v to_o be_v cast_v into_o hell_n fire_n i_o demand_v how_o these_o proceed_n of_o god_n be_v coherent_a or_o can_v be_v make_v coherent_a to_o rule_n of_o justice_n and_o goodness_n among_o man_n and_o if_o no_o man_n be_v able_a sufficient_o to_o perform_v this_o postulatum_fw-la i_o see_v not_o what_o shall_v hinder_v man_n to_o conclude_v from_o this_o proceed_v that_o god_n do_v not_o tie_v himself_o nor_o will_v be_v tie_v by_o other_o to_o act_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o moral_a congruity_n pass_v among_o men._n whence_o there_o be_v not_o a_o necessity_n of_o frame_v a_o self-subsisting_a soul_n in_o man_n capable_a of_o future_a reward_n and_o punishment_n for_o that_o god_n may_v order_v thing_n in_o what_o other_o manner_n he_o please_v without_o be_v any_o way_n tie_v to_o observe_v the_o rule_n of_o morality_n accept_v among_o man_n or_o to_o proceed_v in_o satisfaction_n of_o their_o expectation_n and_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o our_o negative_a argument_n before_o the_o total_a departure_n from_o which_o it_o seem_v fit_a to_o reflect_v upon_o a_o sting_n leave_v in_o the_o expression_n that_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o justify_v the_o proceed_v of_o god_n concern_v the_o exceed_a multitude_n of_o the_o damn_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o save_v nor_o to_o reconcile_v that_o sort_n of_o act_v to_o the_o common_a rule_n of_o justice_n and_o goodness_n it_o appeal_v a_o thing_n so_o difficult_a as_o we_o think_v reason_n too_o weak_a a_o instrument_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o and_o that_o no_o sufficient_a revelation_n have_v yet_o be_v make_v unto_o man_n upon_o which_o they_o may_v ground_v any_o clear_a justification_n of_o the_o same_o in_o a_o full_o intelligible_a manner_n but_o that_o this_o may_v be_v say_v thereupon_o with_o very_o great_a assurance_n that_o god_n be_v essential_o justice_n and_o goodness_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v he_o can_v act_v against_o his_o own_o essence_n and_o therefore_o all_o that_o god_n do_v be_v agreeable_a to_o justice_n and_o goodness_n in_o respect_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o manner_n of_o act_v and_o that_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n proceed_v from_o our_o own_o ignorance_n and_o infirmity_n but_o if_o by_o god_n far_a revelation_n concern_v such_o thing_n in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o a_o future_a state_n after_o this_o life_n man_n do_v come_v to_o understand_v the_o true_a state_n of_o affair_n concern_v this_o question_n they_o need_v have_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o god_n proceed_n with_o man_n will_v then_o appear_v full_a of_o goodness_n justice_n and_o mercy_n since_o in_o nature_n and_o truth_n the_o thing_n can_v possible_o be_v otherwise_o we_o now_o proceed_v to_o our_o positive_a proof_n that_o for_o the_o due_a and_o proper_a application_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n future_a to_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n or_o any_o need_n at_o all_o to_o introduce_v or_o constitute_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n for_o that_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a open_o declare_v as_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o that_o very_a purpose_n and_o intent_n that_o both_o body_n and_o soul_n may_v be_v sure_a of_o receive_v future_a reward_n and_o punishment_n according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o farm_n of_o live_v in_o this_o world_n a_o thing_n which_o the_o ancient_a jew_n and_o gentile_n can_v never_o imagine_v nor_o can_v it_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v unless_o the_o same_o have_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n and_o so_o well_o and_o full_o assert_v and_o testify_v as_o there_o be_v no_o room_n leave_v for_o doubt_n or_o infidelity_n concern_v the_o same_o but_o before_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o full_a proof_n of_o this_o point_n some_o observation_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n shall_v be_v propound_v fit_a for_o people_n to_o take_v into_o their_o consideration_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n as_o clear_o assert_v in_o scripture_n as_o any_o other_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n whatsoever_o and_o have_v as_o full_a and_o concurrent_a evidence_n for_o the_o proof_n and_o certainty_n of_o it_o as_o that_o christ_n jesus_n come_v to_o save_v sinner_n and_o we_o have_v the_o same_o ground_n to_o believe_v the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o and_o in_o this_o assurance_n and_o certainty_n the_o resurrection_n do_v far_o transcend_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n which_o be_v not_o dogmatical_o assert_v by_o any_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n nor_o doctinal_o teach_v in_o it_o but_o be_v support_v only_o by_o a_o collection_n upon_o inference_n from_o some_o text_n which_o mention_v the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o
man_n without_o design_n to_o teach_v concern_v it_o 2._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o retribution_n expect_v to_o be_v make_v at_o the_o resurrection_n will_v be_v both_o more_o complete_a and_o formal_a than_o what_o man_n conceive_v to_o be_v in_o the_o procedure_n concern_v a_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n we_o read_v god_n will_v not_o execute_v upon_o sodom_n without_o a_o full_a examination_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o so_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o resurrection_n all_o shall_v stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o book_n shall_v be_v open_v that_o of_o conscience_n and_o that_o of_o life_n that_o of_o conscience_n have_v enough_o evidence_n to_o condemn_v the_o whole_a world_n but_o those_o who_o name_n be_v find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o those_o only_o shall_v escape_v by_o special_a privilege_n or_o imputation_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o proceed_v will_v be_v more_o formal_a so_o the_o retribution_n will_v be_v more_o complete_a and_o make_v to_o both_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o man_n his_o soul_n and_o his_o body_n which_o as_o they_o have_v joint_o and_o inseparate_o act_v in_o this_o life_n so_o shall_v they_o rejoice_v or_o mourn_v at_o the_o resurrection_n after_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o last_o judgement_n pass_v upon_o they_o 3._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o death_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v frequent_o call_v and_o compare_v to_o a_o sleep_n and_o that_o the_o most_o sound_a and_o profound_a and_o in_o such_o a_o sleep_n viz._n a_o sound_a sleep_n whatsoever_o time_n pass_v over_o the_o sleeper_n head_n he_o have_v no_o perceivance_n of_o if_o it_o be_v two_o ten_o or_o twenty_o hour_n the_o length_n or_o shortness_n of_o the_o pass_a time_n do_v not_o at_o all_o appear_v to_o the_o sleeper_n but_o at_o his_o wake_n he_o rise_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v but_o new_o fall_v asleep_o man_n death_n be_v such_o a_o profound_a sleep_n and_o his_o resurrection_n such_o a_o wake_v if_o during_o that_o sleep_n there_o go_v over_o the_o dead_a man_n head_n month_n or_o year_n to_o a_o hundred_o or_o a_o thousand_o this_o be_v no_o way_n perceivable_a by_o the_o dead_a person_n but_o when_o he_o rise_v it_o will_v be_v but_o as_o if_o he_o have_v new_o fall_v asleep_o we_o read_v that_o a_o thousand_o year_n with_o god_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n nor_o be_v they_o in_o truth_n so_o much_o and_o in_o our_o present_a case_n we_o may_v say_v that_o a_o thousand_o year_n go_v over_o such_o a_o sleeper_n head_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n to_o he_o or_o be_v rather_o less_o viz_o not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o sleeper_n as_o one_o day_n to_o a_o man_n that_o be_v active_a in_o the_o world_n for_o that_o the_o dead_a man_n be_v not_o at_o all_o affect_a with_o the_o time_n which_o pass_v over_o he_o but_o when_o the_o last_o trumpet_n shall_v sound_v the_o dead_a world_n shall_v awake_v as_o if_o they_o have_v then_o but_o new_o fall_v asleep_o ready_a to_o obey_v the_o summons_n of_o rise_v you_o dead_a and_o come_v to_o judgement_n whence_o although_o the_o time_n betwixt_o death_n and_o judgement_n appear_v upon_o a_o sudden_a conception_n to_o be_v long_o or_o overlong_a yet_o upon_o a_o better_a search_v it_o will_v be_v find_v of_o very_o small_a importance_n either_o in_o respect_n to_o god_n or_o man._n and_o notice_n it_o seem_v may_v be_v take_v that_o it_o will_v look_v like_o a_o great_a impropriety_n to_o term_v death_n a_o sleep_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o after_o death_n the_o better_a part_n of_o the_o man_n viz._n his_o soul_n continue_v wake_v and_o alive_a and_o at_o a_o great_a liberty_n and_o freedom_n of_o action_n than_o ever_o it_o enjoy_v during_o its_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n 4._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o same_o which_o die_v rises_z and_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v principal_a in_o man_n so_o man_n shall_v be_v more_o the_o same_o at_o his_o rise_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o soul_n then_o of_o his_o body_n for_o his_o body_n shall_v be_v but_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n as_o wheat_n come_v of_o wheat_n and_o barley_n of_o barley_n but_o when_o providence_n have_v so_o form_v the_o body_n and_o kindle_v in_o it_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n by_o breathe_v into_o he_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n to_o be_v derive_v only_o from_o heaven_n his_o humane_a power_n and_o faculty_n viz._n his_o sense_n and_o common_a sense_n his_o fantasy_n intellect_n and_o judgement_n his_o affection_n and_o passion_n his_o knowledge_n and_o memory_n shall_v be_v altogether_o the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v when_o he_o die_v and_o as_o much_o the_o same_o as_o they_o be_v at_o a_o man_n wake_v again_o after_o a_o sound_n and_o long_o sleep_v take_v and_o the_o person_n rise_v shall_v be_v more_o the_o same_o than_o a_o old_a man_n be_v the_o same_o person_n that_o he_o be_v when_o he_o be_v young_a the_o same_o person_n soul_n and_o body_n that_o die_v shall_v be_v revive_v and_o rise_v again_o as_o one_o who_o fall_v asleep_a wake_v and_o return_v to_o the_o former_a power_n affection_n and_o action_n of_o his_o life_n but_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o a_o separate_a be_v and_o state_n of_o activity_n during_o all_o that_o time_n of_o the_o separation_n how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v to_o obtain_v a_o resurrection_n or_o be_v conceive_v to_o desire_v a_o reunion_n with_o that_o body_n which_o before_o be_v but_o as_o a_o cage_n or_o prison_n to_o it_o and_o it_o seem_v such_o a_o soul_n shall_v rather_o fear_v and_o resist_v such_o a_o reunion_n with_o its_o former_a body_n then_o rejoice_v at_o it_o or_o be_v content_v with_o it_o 5._o we_o may_v observe_v that_o betwixt_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o man_n no_o alteration_n of_o his_o condition_n can_v be_v expect_v or_o hope_v for_o but_o as_o the_o tree_n fall_v so_o it_o must_v lie_v and_o as_o death_n leave_v we_o so_o judgement_n shall_v find_v we_o the_o body_n be_v return_v to_o the_o dust_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v and_o if_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n and_o activity_n first_o derive_v from_o god_n and_o sine_fw-la propagate_v by_o generation_n be_v by_o death_n extinguish_v there_o remain_v nothing_o for_o a_o alter_a power_n natural_o to_o work_v upon_o solomon_n tell_v we_o there_o be_v no_o work_n nor_o device_n nor_o knowledge_n nor_o wisdom_n in_o the_o grave_a but_o all_o be_v rest_n and_o peace_n there_o and_o so_o say_v job_n there_o the_o wicked_a cease_v from_o trouble_v and_o there_o the_o we_o airy_a be_v at_o rest_n so_o chap._n 3.11_o oh_o that_o i_o have_v die_v from_o the_o womb_n i_o shall_v then_o have_v be_v as_o though_o i_o have_v not_o be_v solomon_n again_o as_o a_o man_n come_v out_o of_o his_o mother_n womb_n so_o shall_v he_o return_v to_o go_v as_o he_o come_v and_o shall_v take_v nothing_o with_o he_o and_o so_o for_o the_o resurrection_n man_n shall_v rise_v as_o they_o lie_v down_o without_o natural_a or_o appear_a possibility_n of_o any_o alteration_n we_o proceed_v now_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o what_o we_o have_v before_o assert_v viz._n that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v a_o article_n or_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n as_o clear_o teach_v and_o assert_v as_o well_o evidence_v and_o attest_v and_o as_o full_o and_o certain_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o any_o other_o point_n or_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n whatsoever_o and_o for_o this_o our_o evidence_n shall_v begin_v from_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o exod._n 3.6_o god_n be_v style_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o from_o that_o style_n the_o resurrection_n be_v prove_v by_o our_o lord_n but_o we_o must_v agree_v that_o the_o proof_n which_o it_o make_v rise_v more_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o he_o who_o quote_v it_o as_o a_o proof_n than_o in_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o word_n themselves_o for_o god_n may_v reasonable_o be_v so_o style_v from_o the_o great_a favour_n which_o he_o have_v show_v to_o those_o person_n and_o his_o covenant_n and_o promise_v make_v with_o they_o and_o to_o they_o but_o the_o sadducee_n refuse_v to_o admit_v of_o any_o other_o scripture_n save_o moses_n his_o write_n and_o to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n out_o of_o those_o write_n our_o lord_n make_v choice_n of_o this_o text_n and_o from_o his_o authority_n the_o same_o must_v be_v admit_v among_o christian_n to_o be_v a_o good_a proof_n of_o our_o future_a resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o ordinary_a reader_n can_v hardly_o have_v draw_v a_o good_a proof_n out_o of_o that_o text_n so_o another_o proof_n of_o the_o resurrection_n appear_v not_o till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o book_n of_o job_n and_o there_o
upon_o a_o undertake_n to_o row_n against_o the_o stream_n and_o general_a opinion_n as_o well_o of_o past_a age_n as_o the_o present_a time_n 1_o sam._n 30.6_o when_o david_n be_v in_o very_o evil_a case_n he_o encourage_v himself_o in_o the_o lord_n his_o god_n he_o it_o be_v who_o have_v require_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o esdras_n 4.35_o great_a be_v the_o truth_n and_o strong_a than_o all_o thing_n those_o who_o know_v that_o their_o aim_n and_o design_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o bring_v the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n to_o light_n to_o the_o end_n that_o god_n truth_n viz._n the_o very_a truth_n thereby_o may_v be_v exhibit_v and_o discover_v may_v it_o seem_v go_v on_o in_o it_o without_o be_v terrify_v or_o bear_v a_o astonish_a regard_n to_o the_o censure_n of_o men._n we_o shall_v proceed_v therefore_o to_o execution_n of_o what_o have_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v intend_v also_o where_o two_o or_o more_o text_n be_v cite_v unto_o which_o one_o same_o answer_n may_v well_o be_v apply_v such_o text_n be_v design_v to_o be_v quote_v together_o or_o at_o once_o that_o the_o same_o answer_n may_v not_o be_v often_o repeat_v and_o whereas_o heretofore_o those_o text_n intend_v to_o prove_v recompense_n in_o a_o state_n future_a to_o this_o life_n have_v be_v often_o apply_v to_o prove_v the_o self-subsistence_n of_o a_o separate_a soul_n here_o will_v be_v care_n take_v to_o detect_v and_o avoid_v that_o point_n of_o misapplication_n we_o begin_v then_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o the_o history_n of_o it_o viz._n gen._n 1.26_o god_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n after_o our_o likeness_n ver._n 27._o so_o god_n create_v man_n in_o his_o own_o image_n chap._n 2.7_o god_n breathe_v into_o man_n nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n we_o have_v before_o prove_v it_o the_o ordinary_a use_n of_o scripture_n to_o express_v the_o person_n by_o name_n or_o term_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o here_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n intend_v a_o live_a person_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n zanchius_n put_v a_o very_a great_a stress_n and_o weight_n upon_o god_n breathe_v into_o man_n nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o a_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n in_o man_n to_o this_o we_o say_v there_o be_v not_o that_o clear_a sense_n in_o the_o text_n which_o seem_v to_o import_v no_o more_o but_o that_o god_n give_v to_o man_n his_o breath_n and_o life_n and_o so_o he_o do_v to_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o kindle_v in_o their_o body_n their_o first_o flame_n of_o life_n propagate_v from_o those_o original_n to_o all_o future_a generation_n each_o generate_a its_o like_a both_o among_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o as_o concern_v the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n what_o and_o where_o it_o be_v we_o leave_v to_o be_v dispute_v as_o it_o have_v be_v from_o those_o ancient_a time_n till_o this_o time_n without_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v a_o clear_a determination_n that_o text_n gen._n 7.22_o all_o terrestrial_a creature_n in_o who_o nostril_n be_v the_o breath_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n die_v in_o the_o flood_n seem_v to_o paraphrase_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n breathe_v into_o man_n nostril_n and_o to_o expound_v it_o in_o the_o sense_n before_o give_v of_o it_o 1_o king_n 17.21_o the_o prophet_n elijah_n prays_n my_o god_n i_o pray_v thou_o let_v this_o child_n soul_n come_v into_o he_o again_o thus_o it_o may_v be_v paraphrase_a lord_n kindle_v again_o in_o this_o child_n the_o flame_n of_o life_n which_o be_v now_o extinguishable_a restore_v he_o to_o life_n again_o but_o the_o mode_n of_o speak_v here_o use_v by_o the_o prophet_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o his_o time_n which_o be_v long_o after_o that_o of_o saul_n a_o like_a thing_n we_o read_v 1_o sam._n 30.12_o concern_v the_o egyptian_a find_v at_o ziklag_n when_o he_o have_v eat_v his_o spirit_n come_v again_o to_o he_o viz._n the_o flame_n of_o life_n almost_o extinguish_v for_o want_n of_o fuel_n be_v again_o revive_v and_o enable_v for_o action_n by_o fresh_a food_n and_o nourishment_n and_o as_o the_o child_n soul_n come_v into_o he_o again_o and_o he_o revive_v so_o this_o aegyptian_n spirit_n come_v again_o to_o he_o when_o he_o have_v eat_v and_o he_o revive_v and_o 2_o king_n 13.21_o a_o dead_a man_n let_v down_o into_o elisha_n grave_n at_o the_o touch_n of_o elisha_n bone_n the_o dead_a man_n revive_v whether_o his_o soul_n return_v or_o his_o flame_n of_o life_n be_v rekindle_v there_o be_v no_o ground_n here_o to_o dispute_v or_o need_v to_o do_v it_o job_n 12.10_o in_o god_n hand_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o every_o live_a thing_n and_o the_o breath_n of_o all_o mankind_n here_o man_n be_v rank_v with_o every_o live_a thing_n as_o to_o his_o soul_n and_o soul_n and_o breath_n be_v take_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o of_o a_o like_a subsistence_n chap._n 34.14_o if_o god_n gather_v to_o himself_o man_n spirit_n and_o his_o breath_n he_o shall_v turn_v to_o his_o dust_n here_o spirit_n and_o breath_n pass_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n chap._n 33.30_o bring_v back_o his_o soul_n from_o the_o pit_n to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o live_n viz._n save_v his_o life_n or_o revive_v he_o psal_n 49.8_o it_o cost_v more_o to_o redeem_v their_o soul_n viz._n their_o life_n or_o person_n their_o riches_n can_v not_o do_v it_o ver._n 15._o but_o god_n have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o place_n of_o hell_n for_o he_o shall_v receive_v i_o viz._n he_o shall_v deliver_v i_o yet_o from_o death_n and_o the_o grave_a and_o hide_v i_o as_o in_o the_o secret_a place_n of_o his_o dwelling_n receive_v i_o under_o his_o protection_n psal_n 56.13_o thou_o have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o death_n viz._n have_v save_v my_o life_n so_o my_o soul_n trust_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o soul_n be_v among_o lion_n and_o my_o soul_n thirst_v for_o thou_o and_o my_o soul_n follow_v hard_a after_o thou_o he_o hold_v my_o soul_n in_o life_n and_o my_o soul_n which_o thou_o have_v redeem_v and_o 72.14_o he_o shall_v redeem_v their_o soul_n from_o deceit_n and_o violence_n 73.19_o deliver_v not_o the_o soul_n of_o thy_o turtle_n dove_n to_o the_o enemy_n 86.2_o preserve_v my_o soul_n for_o i_o be_o holy_a ver_fw-la 13._o thou_o have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o low_a hell_n and_o my_o soul_n be_v full_a of_o trouble_n and_o lord_n why_o cast_v thou_o out_o my_o soul_n 89.48_o what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o live_v and_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n shall_v he_o deliver_v his_o soul_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o grave_a and_o bless_v the_o lord_n o_o my_o soul_n and_o he_o satisfi_v the_o empty_a soul_n and_o fill_v the_o hungry_a soul_n with_o goodness_n and_o their_o soul_n abhor_v all_o manner_n of_o meat_n and_o those_o who_o speak_v evil_a against_o my_o soul_n all_o these_o and_o abundance_n more_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n do_v under_o the_o word_n or_o term_n soul_n intend_v and_o signify_v the_o person_n the_o life_n the_o affection_n of_o the_o party_n praise_v the_o lord_n o_o my_o soul_n these_o and_o many_o other_o text_n sound_v to_o common_a reader_n as_o proof_n of_o a_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n of_o man_n but_o that_o opinion_n may_v be_v pass_v for_o a_o clear_a mistake_n and_o a_o apparent_a mis-conception_n prov._n 11.25_o the_o liberal_a soul_n shall_v be_v make_v fat_a viz._n the_o liberal_a person_n chap._n 13.4_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o sluggard_n desire_v and_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o diligent_a shall_v be_v make_v fat_a viz._n the_o diligent_a person_n 14.25_o a_o true_a witness_n deliver_v soul_n people_n men._n chap._n 16.24_o pleasant_n word_n be_v sweet_a to_o the_o soul_n 19.2_o that_o the_o soul_n he_o without_o knowledge_n it_o be_v not_o good_a viz._n the_o person_n chasten_v thy_o son_n and_o let_v not_o thy_o soul_n spare_v for_o his_o cry_n do_v not_o thou_o spare_v the_o full_a soul_n loathe_v the_o honeycomb_n thus_o far_o we_o have_v add_v to_o our_o former_a proof_n that_o soul_n be_v very_o often_o put_v for_o person_n and_o we_o now_o expect_v that_o shall_v pass_v for_o a_o grant_v truth_n and_o it_o may_v still_o be_v confirm_v by_o more_o testimony_n than_o all_o that_o have_v yet_o be_v cite_v eccles_n 8.8_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v power_n over_o the_o spirit_n to_o retain_v the_o spirit_n neither_o have_v he_o power_n in_o the_o day_n of_o death_n here_o spirit_n seem_v to_o intend_v breath_n or_o life_n chap._n 10.4_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o ruler_n rise_v up_o against_o thou_o viz._n his_o
be_v better_o know_v it_o seem_v it_o can_v have_v but_o little_a force_n of_o proof_n in_o this_o argument_n joh._n 12_o 26._o if_o any_o man_n serve_v i_o let_v he_o follow_v i_o and_o where_o i_o be_o there_o shall_v also_o my_o servant_n be_v chap._n 14.3_o if_o i_o go_v and_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o unto_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o you_o may_v be_v also_o this_o late_a text_n expound_v the_o former_a viz._n christ_n servant_n shall_v be_v where_o he_o be_v intend_v after_o he_o have_v first_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o they_o and_o then_o come_v again_o to_o receive_v they_o these_o particular_a text_n of_o scripture_n be_v all_o that_o we_o meet_v with_o that_o be_v quote_v by_o other_o or_o be_v observe_v by_o we_o and_o tend_v material_o to_o proof_n of_o the_o separate_a state_n or_o subsistence_n of_o humane_a soul_n after_o this_o life_n end_v and_o yet_o there_o remain_v one_o persuasive_a which_o incline_v common_a reader_n as_o much_o or_o more_o than_o any_o other_o argument_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o separate_a state_n of_o soul_n subsist_v after_o they_o be_v part_v from_o the_o body_n a_o persuasive_a rise_n from_o induction_n of_o many_o scriptural_a expression_n concern_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n as_o different_a and_o even_o opposite_a thing_n and_o principle_n rom._n 7._o describe_v the_o contest_v betwixt_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n as_o if_o they_o be_v natural_o different_a principle_n in_o man_n whereas_o they_o be_v but_o different_a faculty_n in_o man_n viz._n the_o affection_n passion_n and_o appetite_n vital_a combat_v the_o faculty_n intellectual_a the_o knowledge_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o party_n with_o various_a success_n but_o these_o be_v express_v by_o the_o term_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o man_n seem_v to_o represent_v they_o as_o two_o principle_n different_a and_o contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o such_o faculty_n we_o agree_v they_o be_v different_z and_o contrary_a but_o such_o principle_n we_o say_v they_o be_v not_o but_o all_o proceed_v from_o the_o same_o principle_n the_o constituent_a part_n of_o man_n viz._n his_o soul_n and_o his_o body_n the_o natural_a power_n of_o such_o a_o compositum_fw-la all_o these_o faculty_n equal_o be_v and_o seem_v the_o one_o of_o they_o independent_a upon_o the_o other_o and_o seldom_o free_a from_o a_o contest_v among_o they_o in_o which_o the_o judgement_n or_o high_a prudence_n of_o the_o party_n bear_v the_o sway_n and_o have_v the_o determinative_a power_n natural_o reside_v in_o it_o so_o as_o what_o be_v here_o signify_v by_o the_o term_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n be_v so_o far_o from_o a_o possibility_n of_o a_o real_a separation_n one_o sort_v from_o the_o other_o as_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v subsist_v but_o in_o eodem_fw-la subjecto_fw-la with_o the_o other_o and_o the_o compositum_fw-la which_o have_v not_o all_o of_o they_o be_v imperfect_a chap._n 8.1_o they_o who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n this_o take_v for_o a_o humane_a spirit_n or_o soul_n must_v intend_v the_o reason_n or_o intellect_n and_o the_o chapter_n go_v in_o term_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n induce_v reader_n to_o accept_v they_o as_o different_a principle_n and_o thence_o separable_a whereas_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o put_v the_o stress_n of_o our_o argument_n upon_o their_o be_v joint-principle_n of_o one_o compositum_fw-la man_n which_o can_v consist_v without_o both_o and_o it_o seem_v as_o he_o man_z can_v subsist_v without_o they_o so_o they_o not_o without_o one_o another_o and_o so_o in_o a_o compositum_fw-la they_o be_v generate_v grow_v stand_v and_o fall_v together_o one_o and_o all_o the_o soul_n the_o body_n and_o the_o compositum_fw-la and_o so_o they_o shall_v rise_v and_o be_v recompense_v together_o and_o what_o god_n have_v so_o join_v together_o in_o band_n of_o nature_n and_o absolute_a coherence_n one_o of_o they_o to_o another_o the_o power_n of_o man_n wit_n and_o persuasion_n will_v never_o be_v able_a final_o to_o separate_v or_o to_o evince_v their_o subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n one_o of_o they_o from_o the_o other_o matth._n 26.41_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o sleep_a disciple_n the_o spirit_n be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a intend_v the_o body_n be_v often_o unable_a to_o act_v according_a to_o the_o reason_n and_o desire_n of_o the_o mind_n judgement_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o man_n and_o that_o infirmity_n of_o weakness_n and_o weariness_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o flesh_n thereby_o make_v unable_a to_o act_v with_o that_o vigour_n and_o continuance_n which_o the_o soul_n act_v in_o the_o phantasy_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o man_n require_v and_o show_v such_o connexion_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n as_o in_o the_o man_n one_o of_o they_o can_v act_v without_o the_o other_o rom._n 8.10_o the_o body_n be_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n because_o of_o righteousness_n 2_o cor._n 7.1_o let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n both_o of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n galat._n 3.3_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n be_v you_o now_o make_v perfect_a in_o the_o flesh_n ch._n 5.16_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n ver._n 19_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n ver._n 22._o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n coloss_n 2.11_o put_v off_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n 1_o cor._n 7.34_o the_o unmarried_a woman_n care_n that_o she_o may_v be_v holy_a both_o in_o body_n and_o in_o spirit_n eph._n 4.4_o there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n 1_o thess_n 5.23_o i_o pray_v your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n james_n 4.5_o the_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o we_o lu_v to_o envy_v 1_o pet._n 2.11_o belove_a i_o beseech_v you_o abstain_v from_o fleshly_a lust_n which_o war_n against_o the_o soul_n ch._n 3.18_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n ch._n 4.1_o he_o that_o suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n and_o must_v live_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n not_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 2_o pet._n 2.10_o wicked_a man_n walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n in_o sin_n here_o name_v rom._n 13.14_o make_v no_o provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n to_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n thereof_o 1_o cor._n 6.20_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n therefore_o glorify_v god_n in_o your_o body_n and_o in_o your_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n these_o text_n and_o their_o like_a have_v a_o sound_n or_o semblance_n of_o suppose_v a_o separate_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n whereas_o their_o true_a signification_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o distinction_n between_o the_o power_n or_o faculty_n of_o the_o compositum_fw-la viz._n those_o vital_a or_o the_o vegetative_a and_o sensual_a from_o those_o intellectual_a and_o rational_a viz._n man_n ambition_n covetousness_n lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v and_o their_o descendants_n from_o his_o knowledge_n of_o common_a sense_n his_o phantasy_n opinion_n reason_n and_o prudence_n the_o first_o sort_n of_o these_o faculty_n and_o their_o inclination_n and_o desire_n be_v signify_v and_o intend_v under_o the_o name_n and_o term_n of_o flesh_n in_o s._n john_n epistle_n call_v the_o world_n and_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o these_o humane_a faculty_n be_v signify_v and_o intend_v under_o the_o name_n and_o term_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o the_o soul_n but_o both_o sort_n be_v fundamental_o and_o even_o inseparate_o unite_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n or_o that_o which_o be_v the_o compositum_fw-la both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n both_o sort_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o conjunction_n of_o these_o two_o principle_n or_o constituent_a part_n of_o the_o man_n it_o seem_v not_o single_o but_o each_o from_o the_o whole_a or_o the_o compositum_fw-la not_o the_o first_o sort_n from_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o second_o sort_n from_o the_o spirit_n or_o soul_n real_o for_o the_o flesh_n by_o itself_o can_v live_v or_o act_v and_o that_o a_o soul_n by_o itself_o either_o ever_o do_v or_o that_o it_o can_v act_v be_v question_v by_o aristotle_n and_o not_o find_v or_o believe_v by_o he_o it_o have_v be_v affirm_v by_o some_o of_o our_o author_n quote_v but_o their_o proof_n offer_v be_v so_o weak_a as_o they_o appear_v very_o unlikely_a to_o persuade_v consider_v people_n who_o can_v put_v off_o their_o former_a prejudices_fw-la nor_o have_v they_o prevail_v yet_o to_o induce_v a_o belief_n that_o the_o soul_n can_v act_v those_o faculty_n of_o the_o second_o
yet_o another_o instance_n in_o this_o kind_a it_o may_v be_v remember_v that_o upon_o this_o dispute_v it_o have_v be_v say_v a_o material_a soul_n in_o man_n can_v not_o so_o act_v in_o his_o sense_n affection_n phantasy_n and_o memory_n as_o we_o find_v to_o be_v do_v and_o therefore_o this_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v immaterial_a to_o this_o it_o be_v reply_v that_o all_o these_o faculty_n be_v act_v by_o a_o material_a soul_n in_o some_o beast_n and_o to_o as_o great_a degree_n of_o perfection_n as_o they_o be_v in_o some_o men._n press_a with_o this_o replication_n four_o of_o our_o author_n who_o handle_v this_o point_n divide_v themselves_o and_o two_o of_o they_o go_v one_o way_n and_z two_o another_z direct_o contrary_a each_o party_n to_o the_o other_o for_o dr._n more_o and_o mr._n baxter_n do_v agree_v the_o force_n of_o the_o replication_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o beast_n be_v act_v in_o all_o these_o faculty_n by_o their_o soul_n but_o that_o those_o soul_n be_v such_o as_o have_v degree_n of_o rationality_n in_o they_o and_o do_v subsist_v after_o the_o beast_n death_n and_o do_v not_o die_v together_o with_o the_o beast_n as_o solomon_n and_o the_o world_n sine_fw-la he_o have_v imagine_v the_o other_o two_o viz._n des_n cartes_n and_o sir_n k._n digby_n fly_v to_o another_o extreme_a and_o say_v that_o beast_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v such_o soul_n or_o any_o degree_n of_o rationality_n as_o that_o themselves_o do_v not_o know_v why_o or_o what_o they_o do_v nor_o that_o they_o do_v any_o thing_n nor_o that_o they_o be_v voluntary_a agent_n or_o have_v any_o design_n in_o or_o knowledge_n of_o what_o they_o do_v but_o they_o act_n like_o machine_n or_o motion_n frame_v by_o art_n and_o be_v act_v by_o heat_n and_o cold_a rarity_n or_o density_n a_o turgency_n of_o their_o blood_n and_o humour_n and_o a_o prick_a and_o promptitude_n in_o their_o body_n and_o member_n to_o action_n but_o that_o they_o have_v neither_o affection_n knowledge_n fantasy_n memory_n or_o the_o like_a nor_o knowledge_n nor_o will_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o do_v of_o these_o two_o pretence_n it_o seem_v the_o former_a may_v pass_v better_o than_o the_o latter_a but_o both_o of_o they_o appear_v so_o incongruous_a and_o unsuitable_a to_o nature_n to_o reason_n and_o to_o expression_n of_o scripture_n as_o they_o just_o fall_v under_o a_o suspicion_n of_o absurdity_n and_o how_o well_o they_o deserve_v to_o come_v under_o that_o denomination_n shall_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o indifferent_a person_n but_o clear_v it_o be_v that_o these_o proposal_n or_o pretence_n be_v devise_v and_o be_v maintain_v in_o subserviency_n to_o the_o immateriality_n of_o soul_n and_o the_o support_v of_o that_o opinion_n only_o and_o serve_v to_o no_o other_o use_v intent_n or_o purpose_n whatsoever_o the_o inconvenience_n arise_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n immateriality_n may_v be_v divers_a as_o from_o the_o allowance_n of_o one_o mistake_a principle_n for_o a_o truth_n many_o fallacy_n do_v thence_o grow_v both_o quick_o and_o strong_o from_o the_o opinion_n of_o this_o separate_a subsistence_n in_o saul_n spring_v his_o go_v to_o a_o witch_n that_o so_o he_o may_v come_v to_o speak_v with_o and_o inquire_v of_o samuel_n and_o the_o devil_n appear_v fortify_v saul_n in_o this_o opinion_n by_o his_o circumvent_a question_n viz._n why_o have_v thou_o disquiet_v i_o to_o bring_v i_o up_o intimate_v thereby_o himself_o to_o be_v the_o true_a soul_n of_o samuel_n subsist_v in_o a_o separate_a estate_n and_o this_o opinion_n be_v the_o only_a foundation_n and_o support_v of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n of_o prayer_n for_o soul_n and_o prayer_n to_o saint_n which_o can_v have_v no_o common_a sense_n in_o they_o if_o soul_n do_v not_o subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v wonderful_a to_o consider_v what_o a_o force_n and_o strength_n there_o be_v in_o a_o long-fostered_n opinion_n and_o custom_n so_o that_o even_o though_o man_n be_v convince_v of_o a_o soul_n materiality_n and_o extinguish_v with_o the_o death_n of_o the_o man_n yet_o it_o may_v not_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o will_v be_v draw_v from_o those_o long-believed_n and_o practise_v vanity_n and_o yet_o those_o obstinate_a retainer_n of_o their_o old_a custom_n must_v natural_o and_o sure_o be_v convince_v of_o all_o and_o be_v judge_v of_o all_o other_o who_o do_v apparent_o perceive_v the_o error_n of_o that_o practice_n from_o the_o original_a of_o self-subsisting_a soul_n arise_v the_o opinion_n of_o soul_n walk_v as_o it_o be_v call_v and_o infest_v house_n and_o place_n in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n which_o in_o the_o more_o dark_a popish_a time_n be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v very_o usual_a and_o even_o common_a but_o of_o late_a time_n have_v lose_v their_o credit_n very_o much_o and_o be_v now_o rare_o speak_v of_o and_o little_o believe_v and_o whatever_o be_v true_a concern_v they_o may_v be_v reasonable_o impute_v to_o the_o grand_a impostor_n and_o his_o subservient_fw-fr spirit_n seek_v to_o deceive_v subvert_v and_o devour_v these_o may_v have_v act_v the_o part_n of_o soul_n as_o the_o witch_n samuel_n do_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n or_o as_o the_o late_a one_o do_v of_o the_o robin_n goodfellow_n or_o the_o fairy_n in_o dark_a time_n and_o so_o the_o heathen_n hold_v a_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n have_v their_o penates_n their_o genii_n and_o lemures_n and_o their_o separate_a soul_n appear_v upon_o occasion_n and_o sometime_o help_v in_o distress_n also_o some_o dream_n to_o such_o purpose_n be_v record_v in_o history_n of_o primitive_a christian_a time_n but_o they_o be_v only_a dream_n and_o for_o such_o we_o pass_v all_o appearance_n or_o act_n of_o soul_n depart_v viz._n either_o for_o dream_n or_o the_o act_n and_o agency_n of_o spirit_n more_o often_o of_o the_o bad_a but_o many_o time_n of_o the_o good_a spirit_n also_o of_o the_o one_o sort_n to_o deceive_v and_o oppress_v of_o the_o other_o sort_n to_o instruct_v and_o protect_v as_o be_v do_v to_o the_o apostle_n imprison_v and_o to_o peter_n in_o paricular_a another_o inconvenience_n may_v be_v add_v viz._n a_o practice_n of_o divers_a protestant_a preacher_n who_o persuade_v their_o trade_n auditor_n to_o drive_v a_o christian_a trade_n as_o the_o most_o gainful_a mart_n and_o bargain_n and_o to_o follow_v christ_n for_o the_o loaf_n and_o profit_n that_o may_v be_v expect_v by_o his_o faith_n and_o service_n for_o beloved_n say_v they_o what_o shall_v he_o profit_v who_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n viz._n himself_o soul_n and_o body_n true_a well_o then_o say_v they_o follow_v our_o direction_n and_o though_o twenty_o per_fw-la cent._n be_v fair_a profit_n and_o to_o have_v cent._n per_fw-la cent._n man_n will_v venture_v themselves_o and_o what_o they_o have_v to_o the_o indies_n you_o shall_v have_v by_o our_o direction_n a_o far_o great_a profit_n and_o a_o more_o gainful_a bargain_n your_o precious_a soul_n shall_v from_o your_o bed_n of_o death_n be_v transport_v by_o angel_n into_o abraham_n be_v bofom_n to_o a_o state_n of_o happiness_n and_o eternity_n and_o for_o this_o you_o have_v the_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n which_o can_v deceive_v any_o who_o confide_v and_o rely_v upon_o it_o this_o mode_n of_o direction_n may_v have_v a_o twofold_n inconvenience_n first_o it_o may_v not_o be_v true_a that_o man_n soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o man_n death_n nor_o at_o all_o without_o the_o body_n second_o it_o seem_v to_o make_v man_n service_n to_o god_n mercenary_a principal_o induce_v by_o a_o desire_n of_o gain_n and_o reward_n even_o build_v upon_o that_o foundation_n quicken_v and_o support_v by_o that_o consideration_n a_o inducement_n sordid_a and_o mechanical_a and_o of_o force_n primely_a if_o not_o only_o with_o such_o people_n it_o seem_v a_o alloy_n of_o base_a metal_n put_v to_o the_o gold_n of_o a_o pure_a christian_a profession_n that_o god_n be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o all_o who_o serve_v he_o be_v a_o scriptural_a rational_a and_o natural_a truth_n but_o that_o service_n level_v at_o the_o reward_n and_o do_v only_o or_o chief_o for_o the_o reward_n sake_n be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o there_o may_v be_v good_a reason_n to_o deny_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o job_n case_n large_o report_v to_o we_o the_o devil_n accuse_v he_o of_o this_o enormity_n say_v he_o do_v job_n serve_v god_n for_o nought_o nay_o thou_o have_v bribe_v he_o to_o it_o by_o thy_o blessing_n intend_v he_o will_v serve_v i_o if_o i_o will_v and_o be_v able_a so_o to_o reward_v he_o it_o cost_v job_n a_o most_o severe_a trial_n to_o wipe_v off_o this_o aspersion_n and_o god_n be_v please_v he_o shall_v undergo_v it_o
to_o that_o intent_n and_o give_v he_o the_o victory_n in_o it_o he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o servant_n work_v like_o hireling_n the_o eye_n of_o who_o mind_n be_v level_v at_o and_o fix_v upon_o their_o wage_n nor_o will_v suffer_v that_o accusation_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o stand_v fix_v as_o a_o calumny_n upon_o they_o they_o shall_v have_v reward_n become_v the_o nobleness_n and_o grandeur_n of_o their_o master_n but_o for_o man_n to_o be_v move_v and_o direct_v to_o serve_v god_n for_o reward_n of_o any_o sort_n or_o value_v whatsoever_o seem_v debasement_n to_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o christianity_n and_o we_o leave_v it_o as_o a_o inconveniency_n draw_v from_o or_o very_o much_o improve_v by_o the_o conceit_n that_o man_n precious_a soul_n have_v a_o subsistence_n in_o a_o separate_a state_n from_o their_o body_n and_o that_o upon_o their_o separation_n they_o pass_v to_o heaven_n immediate_o hence_o we_o pass_v and_o come_v to_o show_v how_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o soul_n materiality_n do_v serve_v to_o the_o solve_v of_o such_o difficulty_n as_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v separate_v subsistence_n and_o first_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v material_a it_o take_v away_o all_o ground_n of_o question_v its_o be_v one_o or_o many_o since_o be_v generate_v and_o extinguish_v with_o the_o body_n as_o the_o constituent_a form_n of_o the_o man_n it_o can_v be_v no_o more_o many_o than_o the_o body_n or_o the_o person_n be_v so_o 2._o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v be_v generate_v or_o propagate_v answer_n or_o silence_n all_o the_o difficulty_n raise_v a_o parte_fw-la ante_fw-la concern_v the_o soul_n touch_v its_o original_a or_o derivation_n and_o there_o can_v be_v neither_o need_n of_o nor_o truth_n in_o the_o pre-existence_n or_o continual_a new_a creation_n of_o soul_n 3._o it_o remove_v the_o query_n how_o soul_n and_o body_n come_v to_o be_v unite_v 4._o it_o give_v a_o clear_a account_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v contaminate_v with_o original_a sin_n as_o well_o and_o as_o much_o as_o the_o body_n be_v so_o next_o for_o the_o soul_n be_v reside_v in_o the_o body_n and_o act_v in_o it_o the_o soul_n be_v material_a possess_v the_o whole_a and_o reside_v sparsim_fw-la in_o every_o member_n and_o small_a parcel_n of_o it_o the_o glow_a and_o inflame_a blood_n carry_v the_o vigour_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n to_o every_o least_o parcel_n of_o the_o body_n and_o thereby_o be_v every_o such_o part_n enliven_v and_o act_v according_a to_o its_o capacity_n and_o the_o intent_n for_o which_o it_o be_v make_v whence_o it_o be_v neither_o all_o in_o every_o place_n nor_o all_o in_o any_o place_n but_o possess_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o supply_n and_o act_n every_o member_n and_o parcel_n as_o have_v be_v before_o describe_v and_o thence_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n materiality_n remove_v all_o difficulty_n concern_v the_o soul_n a_o parte_fw-la post_fw-la viz._n the_o question_n whither_o it_o go_v and_o what_o become_v of_o it_o and_o what_o it_o do_v or_o can_v do_v or_o suffer_v after_o its_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n materiality_n do_v also_o deliver_v from_o all_o the_o absurdity_n beforenamed_n for_o then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o need_n for_o or_o a_o pretence_n of_o a_o new_a creation_n of_o soul_n which_o grow_v out_o of_o nature_n and_o generation_n nor_o will_v there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o use_v young_a innocent_a soul_n with_o so_o great_a and_o unreasonable_a rigour_n or_o make_v their_o body_n the_o cage_n or_o prison_n of_o they_o nor_o will_v there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o ascribe_v to_o beast_n pre-existent_a and_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n nor_o for_o the_o deprive_v they_o of_o sense_n memory_n affection_n and_o knowledge_n which_o natural_o and_o evident_o they_o have_v and_o so_o known_o as_o it_o seem_v absurd_a to_o aver_v the_o contrary_n but_o than_o it_o may_v be_v say_v this_o will_v make_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o equal_a expectation_n the_o first_o of_o these_o we_o grant_v but_o the_o second_o we_o deny_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n we_o grant_v as_o well_o as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o body_n the_o same_o sort_n of_o flesh_n bones_o blood_n breath_n spirit_n urine_n humour_n and_o life_n and_o the_o same_o sort_n of_o soul_n or_o live_v flame_n supporting_z and_o act_v in_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o their_o body_n but_o not_o of_o equal_a expectation_n and_o yet_o the_o difference_n arise_v not_o from_o nature_n but_o from_o the_o declare_a disposal_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n who_o have_v appoint_v a_o day_n in_o which_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n in_o righteousness_n by_o that_o man_n who_o he_o have_v ordain_v whereof_o be_n have_v give_v assurance_n unto_o all_o man_n in_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a this_o appointment_n of_o god_n that_o man_n shall_v be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o judge_v and_o reward_v according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o their_o life_n lead_v here_o upon_o earth_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o original_a of_o that_o difference_n which_o shall_v be_v between_o the_o future_a state_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n this_o resurrection_n be_v evident_o declare_v to_o be_v design_v for_o man_n without_o mention_n of_o beast_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v say_v and_o not_o for_o beast_n one_o sort_n shall_v rise_v to_o give_v account_n and_o receive_v recompense_n for_o their_o work_n and_o the_o other_o not_o and_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n for_o different_a expectation_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n as_o well_o as_o it_o answer_v the_o argument_n for_o a_o separate_a state_n of_o soul_n draw_v from_o the_o accept_a rule_n of_o moral_a congruity_n among_o men._n hence_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a profession_n derive_v and_o hence_o may_v all_o argument_n for_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n be_v better_a answer_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n than_o they_o can_v be_v from_o reason_n nature_n or_o the_o principle_n of_o any_o other_o religion_n whatsoever_o we_o go_v on_o to_o consider_v how_o the_o inconvenience_n derive_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n may_v be_v remove_v or_o help_v by_o the_o acceptance_n of_o the_o soul_n materiality_n and_o if_o so_o it_o be_v and_o therefore_o extinguish_v by_o death_n of_o the_o man_n man_n will_v not_o attempt_v upon_o utter_a impossibility_n viz._n to_o raise_v or_o consult_v the_o spirit_n of_o dead_a man_n when_o they_o know_v that_o in_o nature_n there_o be_v no_o such_o spirit_n and_o for_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n to_o the_o dead_a and_o for_o the_o dead_a remove_v but_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o change_v it_o for_o the_o materiality_n and_o extinguishment_n of_o they_o and_o this_o change_n will_v present_o remove_v purgatory_n as_o useless_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n because_o there_o will_v be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n for_o it_o to_o work_v upon_o all_o its_o pretence_n be_v for_o the_o purge_v of_o separate_a soul_n and_o if_o real_o there_o be_v no_o such_o in_o the_o world_n then_o can_v there_o be_v no_o use_n no_o more_o than_o there_o be_v a_o real_a be_v of_o purgatory_n then_o for_o prayer_n to_o the_o dead_a who_o in_o life_n be_v holy_a person_n or_o saint_n if_o their_o soul_n be_v material_a and_o in_o death_n extinguish_v what_o can_v there_o be_v lest_o for_o addressing_z of_o prayer_n unto_o but_o only_o man_n own_o fantasy_n and_o imagination_n and_o ancient_a practice_n and_o custom_n which_o have_v a_o very_a strong_a operation_n upon_o man_n opinion_n and_o yet_o hardly_o so_o potent_a as_o to_o justify_v to_o man_n ordinary_a reason_n the_o addressing_z of_o prayer_n to_o person_n who_o they_o be_v convince_v have_v utter_o no_o subsistence_n at_o all_o and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a will_v upon_o the_o same_o account_v become_v as_o needless_a and_o unsuccessful_a as_o the_o former_a for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o soul_n to_o pray_v out_o of_o purgatory_n nor_o any_o thing_n in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la for_o which_o prayer_n can_v be_v apply_v it_o must_v appear_v utter_o against_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n for_o man_n to_o pray_v for_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o or_o for_o nothing_o and_o it_o seem_v if_o man_n be_v once_o so_o persuade_v they_o will_v never_o practice_v or_o use_v such_o unreasonable_a ceremony_n in_o any_o time_n to_o come_v as_o for_o the_o conceit_n of_o soul_n appear_v or_o walk_v after_o death_n of_o the_o person_n if_o man_n can_v bring_v themselves_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o separately_z subsist_v soul_n in_o the_o world_n they_o
of_o this_o soul_n the_o existence_n of_o it_o debend_v upon_o the_o act_n like_o a_o common_a flame_n of_o fire_n or_o the_o flash_n of_o it_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o cease_v illico_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la and_o can_v be_v numerical_o the_o same_o again_o without_o miracle_n and_o this_o materiae_fw-la vitalis_fw-la incendium_fw-la have_v so_o many_o evidence_n that_o whoso_o shall_v well_o consider_v they_o will_v be_v very_o apt_a to_o believe_v sanguinem_fw-la revera_fw-la efflagrare_fw-la vitamque_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la flammae_fw-la similem_fw-la quam_fw-la ipsammet_n eandem_fw-la esse_fw-la p._n 30._o he_o rank_n this_o sensitive_a soul_n of_o man_n in_o the_o same_o classis_fw-la with_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o quadrupedes_fw-la quoniam_fw-la in_o utrisque_fw-la praecordiorum_fw-la necnon_fw-la cerebri_fw-la ejusque_fw-la appendicis_fw-la nervosi_fw-la eadem_fw-la est_fw-la conformatio_fw-la p._n 40._o he_o do_v not_o take_v care_n to_o answer_v those_o who_o assert_v that_o sensitive_a creature_n have_v not_o power_n to_o use_v their_o sense_n and_o power_n of_o perception_n without_o the_o assistance_n and_o government_n of_o a_o immaterial_a intelligent_a spirit_n for_o the_o contexture_n of_o the_o body_n and_o wonderful_a aptitude_n of_o its_o organ_n may_v serve_v to_o confute_v this_o opinion_n p._n 42._o in_o mechanicis_fw-la fire_n air_n and_o light_n be_v the_o principal_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o which_o humane_a industry_n can_v effect_v thing_n that_o be_v wonderful_a useful_a and_o necessary_a and_o likely_a it_o be_v that_o the_o wise_a creator_n do_v form_n and_o frame_v the_o soul_n of_o live_a creature_n out_o of_o those_o principle_n or_o material_n add_v to_o they_o a_o eminent_a virtue_n or_o efficacy_n and_o fit_v for_o they_o the_o most_o proper_a and_o apt_a organ_n exquisite_o frame_v and_o put_v together_o as_o he_o proceed_v to_o show_v conclude_v that_o they_o be_v subject_n of_o wonder_n and_o admiration_n rather_o than_o of_o a_o rational_a disquisition_n yet_o proceed_v to_o a_o rational_a account_n of_o they_o in_o page_n 46_o and_o 47._o and_o conclude_v that_o the_o sensitive_a soul_n of_o man_n both_o in_o the_o head_n and_o systemate_fw-la nervoso_fw-la as_o to_o all_o its_o power_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o they_o be_v mere_o organical_a proindeque_fw-la extensam_fw-la &_o quodammodo_fw-la corpoream_fw-la esse_fw-la p._n 52._o but_o this_o artifice_n can_v be_v a_o work_n of_o chance_n but_o of_o a_o divine_a architect_n p._n 59_o as_o to_o the_o objection_n that_o matter_n be_v not_o only_o insensible_a but_o iners_fw-la and_o mere_o passive_a incapable_a of_o sense_n or_o animal_n activity_n he_o answer_v that_o between_o corpus_fw-la sensibile_fw-la &_o insensibile_fw-la there_o be_v not_o much_o more_o difference_n than_o betwixt_o accensum_fw-la &_o inaccensum_fw-la and_o of_o inaccensum_fw-la we_o can_v soon_o make_v accensum_fw-la and_o why_o not_o then_o sensibile_fw-la be_v make_v ex_fw-la insensibili_fw-la materia_fw-la quaelibet_fw-la uti_fw-la non_fw-la comburitur_fw-la ita_fw-la non_fw-la animator_fw-la but_o if_o a_o active_a element_n be_v communicate_v and_o dispose_v among_o fit_a matter_n there_o usual_o proceed_v from_o that_o mixture_n a_o wonderful_a activity_n the_o enkindle_a part_n rapidissime_fw-la commotae_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la animatae_fw-la exiliunt_fw-la &_o lumen_fw-la cum_fw-la calore_fw-la &_o luce_fw-fr producunt_fw-la p._n 60._o he_o can_v find_v in_o the_o soul_n or_o the_o body_n any_o distinct_a material_a part_n or_o subject_n to_o which_o the_o rational_a power_n or_o faculty_n may_v be_v just_o attribute_v but_o when_o he_o consider_v the_o corpus_fw-la animatum_fw-la together_o as_o a_o divine_a fabric_n build_v and_o intend_v for_o proper_a and_o special_a uses_n he_o will_v say_v confident_o that_o god_n by_o the_o intent_n and_o law_n of_o his_o creation_n have_v so_o ordain_v that_o in_o the_o composition_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o confluence_n of_o faculty_n and_o result_v of_o they_o as_o shall_v be_v needful_a for_o every_o animal_n and_o the_o proper_a end_n and_o use_n of_o it_o and_o that_o in_o they_o materiam_fw-la superavit_fw-la opus_fw-la p._n 61._o consider_v a_o organ_n make_v out_o of_o stupid_a and_o hard_a matter_n of_o itself_o utter_o unactive_a yet_o let_v it_o be_v inspire_v by_o a_o convenient_a breath_n and_o a_o act_v by_o a_o direct_a hand_n it_o can_v vary_v sound_n and_o agree_v they_o to_o a_o miracle_n in_o all_o ordinary_a computation_n of_o such_o as_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o nature_n and_o composure_n of_o they_o philip_n melanchton_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la p._n 5._o the_o vital_a spirit_n of_o man_n be_v breed_v in_o the_o heart_n &_o veer_fw-la sunt_fw-la flammae_fw-la and_o from_o thence_o rise_v man_n affection_n cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la motibus_fw-la p._n 7._o it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o brute_n be_v material_a spirit_n or_o a_o temperament_n such_o a_o anima_fw-la as_o be_v in_o sanguine_a and_o therefore_o among_o the_o hebrew_n anima_fw-la significat_fw-la vitam_fw-la for_o that_o sanguis_fw-la est_fw-la vehiculum_fw-la vitæ_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la vitales_fw-la illam_fw-la rem_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la ciet_fw-la corpora_fw-la quam_fw-la nominamus_fw-la animam_fw-la p._n 8._o as_o in_o a_o torch_n flamma_n rapit_fw-la alimentum_fw-la so_o the_o vital_a spirit_n of_o animal_n which_o be_v tenuissima_fw-la flamma_n genita_fw-la ex_fw-la sanguine_a virtute_fw-la cordis_n volitans_fw-la per_fw-la totam_fw-la corporis_fw-la machinam_fw-la &_o largiens_fw-la corpori_fw-la vivificum_fw-la calorem_fw-la p._n 12._o the_o philosopher_n and_o divine_n do_v agree_v that_o the_o vegetative_a and_o sensitive_a soul_n be_v material_a or_o temperamenta_n propagatus_fw-la ex_fw-la natura_fw-la corporea_fw-la from_o the_o seed_n and_o as_o in_o the_o beast_n sic_fw-la anima_fw-la vegetativa_fw-la &_o sensitiva_fw-la in_o homine_fw-la dici_fw-la potest_fw-la homo_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la generate_fw-la imperfectius_fw-la quam_fw-la plantae_fw-la aut_fw-la boves_fw-la gignit_fw-la ergo_fw-la homo_fw-la hominem_fw-la saltem_fw-la secundum_fw-la vitam_fw-la sentientem_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la secundum_fw-la animam_fw-la rationalem_fw-la and_o the_o two_o former_a must_v be_v confess_v to_o be_v ex_fw-la traduce_n p._n 14._o if_o it_o be_v demand_v concern_v the_o how_o and_o the_o why_o of_o the_o animal_n action_n he_o answer_v cernimus_fw-la motus_fw-la quod_fw-la cur_n &_o quomodo_fw-la ita_fw-la hoc_fw-la factum_fw-la sit_fw-la sapientiae_fw-la est_fw-la artificis_fw-la non_fw-la nostrae_fw-la p._n 112._o cerebrum_fw-la est_fw-la officina_fw-la cogitationum_fw-la judicii_fw-la ratiocinationis_fw-la &_o memoriae_fw-la man_n can_v find_v out_o its_o manner_n of_o work_v nor_o what_o the_o very_a true_a substance_n of_o it_o be_v p._n 116._o in_o hac_fw-la caligine_fw-la non_fw-la perspicimus_fw-la quomodo_fw-la haec_fw-la miranda_n opera_fw-la cognitio_fw-la ratiocinatio_fw-la memoria_fw-la recordatio_fw-la judicium_fw-la fiant_fw-la sed_fw-la fieri_fw-la ea_fw-la cerebri_fw-la open_a certissimum_fw-la est_fw-la p._n 203._o brute_n have_v apprehension_n and_o memory_n &_o potentiam_fw-la ad_fw-la cogitationem_fw-la factam_fw-la p._n 205._o the_o act_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n and_o memory_n be_v know_v to_o we_o viz._n that_o such_o act_n there_o be_v quomodo_fw-la fiant_fw-la non_fw-la cernimus_fw-la in_fw-la hac_fw-la caligine_fw-la p._n 286._o the_o degree_n of_o act_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o they_o describi_fw-la non_fw-la satis_fw-la possunt_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la cernuntur_fw-la oculis_fw-la sed_fw-la similitudine_fw-la quadam_fw-la existimantur_fw-la p._n 297._o he_o descant_v upon_o immortality_n and_o derive_v the_o certainty_n of_o it_o from_o the_o resurrection_n and_o say_v that_o the_o old_a patriarch_n rise_v with_o our_o saviour_n sandii_fw-la tractatus_fw-la de_fw-la origine_fw-la animae_fw-la p._n 1._o the_o opinion_n relate_v by_o eusebius_n hist_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 34._o be_v that_o the_o soul_n do_v rise_v and_o grow_v ex_fw-la traduce_v and_o that_o it_o extinguish_v with_o the_o life_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o that_o before_o the_o last_o judgement_n the_o whole_a man_n shall_v rise_v again_o he_o cite_v augustin_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la cap._n 48._o saying_n that_o cyril_n and_o the_o luciferian_o &_o maxima_fw-la pars_fw-la occidentalium_fw-la do_v think_v so_o testae_fw-la hieronymo_n tom._n 2._o epist_n 82._o &_o greg._n nyssen_n lib._n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la this_o opinion_n be_v condemn_v in_o a_o council_n of_o that_o time_n wherein_o origen_n bear_v a_o great_a sway_n this_o opinion_n viz._n of_o the_o generation_n of_o soul_n per_fw-la populos_fw-la barbaros_fw-la arrii_fw-la religionem_fw-la sectantes_fw-la videtur_fw-la explosa_fw-la creatione_fw-la animae_fw-la introducta_fw-la this_o author_n be_v a_o origenist_n a_o maintainer_n of_o preexistence_n and_o therefore_o oppose_v both_o the_o generation_n and_o new_a creation_n of_o soul_n these_o quotation_n have_v be_v make_v to_o show_v the_o agreement_n of_o other_o man_n with_o what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o search_n after_o soul_n and_o that_o willis_n and_o melanchton_n be_v content_v to_o confess_v their_o ignorance_n of_o the_o particular_a working_n of_o god_n in_o man_n and_o
become_v ineffectual_a to_o this_o i_o reply_v that_o i_o do_v believe_v you_o or_o i_o or_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o can_v judge_v of_o humane_a nature_n no_o otherwise_o than_o we_o now_o find_v it_o to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v before_o the_o fall_n we_o do_v not_o and_o perhaps_o can_v know_v the_o word_n of_o the_o curse_n in_o genesis_n neither_o express_v nor_o import_v such_o a_o depravation_n of_o man_n reason_n soul_n or_o power_n of_o government_n but_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o apply_v altogether_o to_o the_o body_n and_o to_o temporal_a concernment_n how_o far_o in_o what_o part_n and_o to_o what_o degree_n humane_a nature_n be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v a_o ignotum_fw-la to_o we_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o receive_v your_o instruction_n thereupon_o towards_o which_o you_o offer_v i_o a_o sentence_n of_o st._n paul_n the_o good_a that_o i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o etc._n etc._n you_o tell_v i_o that_o the_o design_n of_o this_o text_n be_v to_o represent_v the_o state_n or_o condition_n of_o those_o people_n who_o have_v no_o other_o help_n against_o their_o lust_n but_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o moses_n and_o that_o it_o be_v altogether_o applicable_a to_o the_o deprave_a and_o unregenerate_a state_n of_o mankind_n sed_fw-la non_fw-la ego_fw-la credulus_fw-la for_o i_o think_v it_o rather_o speak_v of_o that_o condition_n in_o which_o st._n paul_n be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o speak_v of_o it_o this_o epistle_n be_v date_v from_o corinth_n and_o we_o do_v not_o read_v sr._n paul_n be_v there_o any_o often_o than_o once_o and_o that_o be_v divers_a year_n after_o his_o conversion_n and_o state_n of_o regeneration_n he_o use_v the_o present_a tense_n viz._n i_o do_v and_o i_o do_v not_o and_o it_o be_v not_o i_o that_o do_v it_o thus_o the_o word_n make_v for_o my_o opinion_n and_o the_o sense_n be_v not_o disagreeable_a for_o where_o be_v the_o man_n so_o full_o regenerate_v as_o that_o this_o say_v of_o st._n paul_n may_v not_o be_v full_o and_o true_o apply_v to_o he_o of_o my_o own_o state_n i_o have_v a_o good_a hope_n and_o yet_o i_o confess_v the_o good_a that_o i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o and_o the_o evil_a that_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v sometime_o too_o often_o very_o often_o and_o i_o pray_v you_o communicate_v to_o i_o how_o you_o find_v it_o with_o yourself_o in_o that_o point_n or_o if_o you_o know_v any_o other_o man_n of_o who_o this_o expression_n may_v not_o be_v true_o predicate_v remember_v that_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o sin_v all_o and_o the_o righteous_a man_n fall_v seven_o time_n a_o day_n which_o good_a man_n will_v not_o do_v if_o they_o can_v help_v it_o viz._n if_o the_o rational_a soul_n be_v intelligent_a and_o regnant_a within_o they_o and_o over_o they_o i_o agree_v with_o you_o that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o the_o special_a grace_n of_o god_n enable_v man_n to_o do_v the_o good_a which_o reason_n and_o rule_n direct_v they_o unto_o and_o so_o to_o avoid_v evil_a and_o that_o thence_o good_a effect_n and_o product_n may_v be_v call_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o you_o say_v that_o if_o man_n do_v resist_v rational_a motion_n and_o persuasion_n then_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n strike_v in_o and_o co-operate_v with_o the_o reasonable_a faculty_n and_o if_o man_n resist_v all_o these_o inducement_n to_o goodness_n they_o be_v leave_v without_o excuse_n i_o demand_v if_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v a_o intelligent_a spirit_n govern_v in_o the_o man_n as_o his_o proper_a form_n what_o be_v it_o in_o man_n that_o do_v or_o in_o likelihood_n can_v resist_v the_o natural_a power_n which_o such_o a_o soul_n shall_v have_v over_o it_o you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o man_n have_v any_o thing_n in_o he_o beside_o his_o soul_n but_o matter_n and_o motion_n and_o i_o will_v have_v you_o tell_v i_o whence_o it_o shall_v come_v that_o mere_a matter_n and_o motion_n shall_v so_o far_o overpower_v such_o a_o intelligent_a soul_n as_o not_o only_o to_o resist_v its_o government_n but_o even_o to_o captivate_v over-rule_v and_o enslave_v it_o not_o only_o to_o a_o content_a in_o evil_n and_o bad_a practice_n of_o sensuality_n but_o even_o bring_v it_o to_o a_o immersion_n and_o a_o delight_n in_o they_o thus_o it_o seem_v your_o suppose_a intelligent_a spirit_n or_o soul_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v a_o sufficient_a effectual_a resistance_n to_o the_o force_n and_o violence_n of_o other_o power_n or_o principle_n to_o the_o humane_a nature_n proper_o belong_v but_o that_o other_o power_n or_o principle_n be_v able_a not_o only_o to_o resist_v the_o rational_a power_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o even_o the_o ordinary_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n also_o for_o you_o say_v that_o man_n resist_v these_o be_v leave_v without_o excuse_n now_o see_v that_o in_o man_n nature_n there_o be_v some_o inward_a principle_n able_a to_o combat_v the_o rational_a soul_n so_o assist_v i_o demand_v of_o you_o what_o sort_n of_o power_n you_o think_v this_o to_o be_v and_o from_o whence_o it_o proceed_v we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o principle_n of_o life_n motion_n or_o activity_n in_o the_o body_n that_o be_v natural_a but_o the_o soul_n hence_o i_o conclude_v that_o this_o power_n so_o able_a to_o resist_v and_o conquer_v the_o rational_a power_n proceed_v from_o the_o same_o soul_n that_o the_o rational_a power_n do_v the_o rational_a power_n be_v the_o soul_n act_v in_o the_o head_n and_o the_o sensitive_a or_o affectionate_a power_n be_v the_o soul_n act_v in_o the_o praecordia_fw-la and_o press_v on_o to_o the_o desire_n of_o such_o object_n as_o be_v near_a hand_n present_o beneficial_a and_o pleasant_a howsoever_o thing_n may_v fall_v out_o for_o the_o future_a but_o if_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v intelligent_a why_o do_v it_o actuate_v the_o sensual_a or_o affectionate_a faculty_n so_o strong_o as_o to_o enable_v it_o to_o combat_n and_o resist_v nay_o for_o much_o the_o great_a part_n to_o overcome_v and_o conquer_v the_o rational_a power_n and_o to_o draw_v the_o soul_n itself_o into_o the_o practice_n of_o sensuality_n which_o she_o her_o self_n do_v disapprove_v and_o condemn_v i_o can_v perceive_v that_o this_o sort_n of_o oeconomy_n in_o the_o microcosm_n be_v comportant_fw-la with_o the_o act_n of_o intelligence_n in_o a_o humane_a soul_n for_o that_o thus_o it_o will_v become_v divide_v against_o itself_o whence_o its_o government_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v but_o if_o this_o soul_n fall_v out_o to_o be_v material_a and_o not_o intelligent_a the_o declare_a oeconomy_n stand_v well_o together_o for_o such_o a_o soul_n can_v act_v every_o part_n member_n and_o organ_n according_a as_o be_v intend_v by_o the_o great_a artificer_n of_o they_o but_o not_o to_o any_o other_o intent_n ad_fw-la libitum_fw-la of_o the_o soul_n it_o act_v therefore_o the_o organ_n of_o sensuality_n and_o affection_n and_o it_o act_n also_o the_o rational_a power_n each_o according_a to_o the_o propriety_n and_o power_n of_o their_o nature_n without_o any_o favour_n or_o inclination_n to_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o so_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o actor_n but_o not_o the_o governor_n in_o the_o microcosm_n for_o sometime_o one_o of_o these_o power_n prevail_v and_o sometime_o the_o other_o so_o as_o aristotle_n compare_v their_o contest_v to_o a_o game_n at_o ball_n as_o it_o be_v whether_o for_o a_o penny_n and_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n at_o all_o of_o the_o success_n from_o the_o cradle_n to_o the_o grave_a for_o time_n and_o the_o thing_n be_v from_o nature_n and_o be_v act_v in_o all_o mankind_n so_o it_o be_v with_o wind_n in_o the_o organ_n it_o act_v the_o fabric_n and_o every_o pipe_n in_o it_o one_o as_o well_o and_o as_o much_o as_o the_o other_o but_o suitable_o to_o their_o several_a constitution_n without_o inclination_n or_o intelligence_n i_o say_v if_o the_o sensitive_a power_n resist_v and_o overcome_v reason_n and_o the_o ordinary_a effect_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o man_n be_v not_o act_v by_o the_o humane_a soul_n by_o what_o then_o be_v they_o act_v and_o if_o by_o it_o they_o be_v act_v it_o seem_v very_o probable_a that_o soul_n be_v material_a and_o not_o intelligent_a 5_o paragraph_n you_o say_v we_o find_v many_o text_n of_o scripture_n import_v that_o man_n perish_v by_o his_o voluntary_a choice_n of_o evil_a and_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o resist_v the_o motion_n and_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o i_o have_v a_o great_a inclination_n to_o believe_v your_o assertion_n notwithstanding_o st._n paul_n rom._n 9_o tell_v we_o god_n have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v and_o his_o purpose_n according_a to_o
found_v upon_o rule_n and_o whether_o those_o rule_n be_v right_a or_o wrong_n real_o their_o be_v accept_v for_o right_a make_v they_o obligatory_a to_o the_o party_n accept_v they_o so_o as_o offence_n against_o erroneous_a rule_n repute_v true_a be_v equal_o burdensome_a to_o the_o conscience_n as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o most_o true_a and_o rectify_v that_o can_v be_v deliver_v to_o man_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o more_o easy_a cure_n viz._n by_o discovery_n of_o the_o falsity_n and_o error_n of_o they_o hence_o may_v be_v infer_v that_o without_o some_o sort_n of_o rule_n and_o submission_n to_o they_o the_o act_n and_o power_n of_o conscience_n be_v not_o perceivable_a which_o show_v they_o do_v not_o flow_v from_o the_o soul_n material_a or_o immaterial_a but_o from_o education_n custom_n opinion_n and_o rule_n to_o which_o action_n must_v be_v compare_v for_o without_o such_o a_o comparison_n judgement_n can_v be_v make_v whether_o they_o be_v right_a or_o wrong_n that_o conscience_n grow_v as_o aforesaid_a appear_v also_o from_o diversity_n in_o the_o act_n of_o it_o for_o some_o man_n make_v a_o great_a scruple_n of_o conscience_n to_o do_v thing_n which_o other_o think_v they_o be_v bind_v in_o duty_n to_o do_v and_o can_v omit_v they_o without_o check_n of_o their_o conscience_n whereas_o immaterial_a soul_n pass_v for_o all_o alike_o and_o if_o conscience_n be_v a_o natural_a efflux_n from_o they_o there_o can_v not_o be_v such_o difference_n and_o contrariety_n in_o the_o act_n of_o it_o i_o have_v observe_v how_o it_o grow_v in_o child_n and_o beast_n from_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o education_n make_v powerful_a in_o they_o by_o the_o terror_n of_o a_o humane_a vengeance_n expect_v to_o follow_v upon_o their_o swerve_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o discipline_n and_o which_o the_o apprehension_n of_o legal_a punishment_n have_v often_o inflict_v upon_o offender_n before_o temporal_a execution_n overtake_v they_o the_o conscience_n of_o sin_n against_o god_n be_v of_o a_o like_a nature_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o it_o grow_v from_o fear_n that_o he_o be_v offend_v for_o the_o breach_n of_o what_o man_n be_v persuade_v he_o have_v command_v to_o be_v do_v or_o not_o do_v will_v inflict_v terrible_a punishment_n for_o the_o same_o of_o unimaginable_a torment_n and_o endless_a duration_n as_o man_n be_v teach_v to_o believe_v and_o expect_v by_o such_o rule_n and_o doctrine_n as_o be_v daily_o represent_v to_o they_o and_o press_v upon_o their_o apprehension_n and_o belief_n and_o thus_o have_v i_o sum_v and_o shorten_v my_o former_o long_o expression_n concern_v conscience_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o receive_v a_o reasonable_a answer_n either_o long_a or_o short_a 4._o paragraph_n you_o quote_v the_o word_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n and_o you_o say_v faith_n here_o signify_v conscience_n my_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n be_v whatsoever_o man_n do_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sin_n that_o be_v a_o sin_n in_o they_o though_o the_o action_n in_o itself_o be_v good_a but_o if_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o those_o rule_n to_o which_o a_o man_n have_v submit_v himself_o this_o be_v a_o sin_n against_o the_o man_n conscience_n though_o if_o there_o be_v no_o accept_a rule_n against_o it_o there_o will_v be_v no_o transgression_n in_o it_o you_o express_v also_o to_o think_v that_o beast_n can_v be_v bring_v by_o any_o education_n to_o resist_v and_o conquer_v their_o appetite_n forget_v what_o former_o i_o say_v of_o a_o set_v dog_n who_o mouth_n will_v water_v and_o his_o chap_n move_v and_o all_o his_o member_n and_o motion_n show_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o be_v in_o with_o his_o game_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v sit_v for_o a_o long_a time_n constrain_v by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o punishment_n to_o be_v expect_v and_o execute_v upon_o his_o do_v otherwise_o and_o many_o instance_n may_v be_v produce_v of_o other_o bestial_a action_n in_o this_o kind_n you_o make_v it_o my_o wonder_n that_o sensual_a power_n do_v for_o much_o the_o great_a part_n over-rule_v the_o rational_a and_o prevail_v against_o it_o you_o say_v i_o may_v likely_a find_v it_o often_o so_o in_o myself_o and_o i_o grant_v it_o and_o therefore_o be_v that_o none_o of_o my_o wonder_n and_o you_o demand_v from_o whence_o comer_n man_n uneasiness_n of_o mind_n upon_o such_o occasion_n i_o answer_v it_o come_v from_o find_v their_o action_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o their_o rule_n and_o therefore_o not_o with_o their_o duty_n for_o the_o failure_n in_o which_o they_o expect_v punishment_n less_o or_o more_o according_a as_o their_o delict_n may_v seem_v to_o deserve_v not_o from_o power_n of_o nature_n in_o its_o simplicity_n but_o its_o cultivated_a capacity_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o rule_n example_n or_o opinion_n to_o which_o man_n have_v submit_v their_o mind_n and_o this_o make_v man_n nocent_a as_o the_o contrary_n make_v man_n innocent_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o own_o underftanding_n which_o be_v their_o conscience_n 5_o paragr_n upon_o your_o maintain_n that_o man_n soul_n be_v a_o immaterial_a intelligent_a spirit_n create_v each_o for_o the_o government_n of_o each_o person_n i_o demand_v whence_o it_o come_v that_o this_o soul_n do_v not_o or_o can_v so_o prevail_v with_o or_o over_o the_o person_n who_o it_o shall_v govern_v as_o to_o keep_v it_o in_o rational_a and_o virtuous_a way_n of_o live_v and_o practice_n but_o that_o the_o far_o great_a number_n of_o people_n follow_v vicious_a practice_n contrary_a to_o right_o reason_n and_o the_o desire_n and_o design_n of_o such_o a_o intelligent_a spirit_n and_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o my_o wonder_n be_v what_o that_o can_v be_v in_o man_n which_o have_v power_n to_o oppose_v and_o overthrow_v the_o government_n and_o command_n of_o this_o kind_a of_o soul_n in_o he_o to_o this_o you_o answer_v you_o say_v with_o st._n james_n this_o come_v from_o man_n lust_n which_o war_n in_o their_o member_n to_o you_o i_o reply_v and_o ask_v from_o what_o original_a in_o man_n do_v such_o lust_n grow_v viz._n affection_n passion_n sensuality_n either_o they_o grow_v from_o the_o same_o original_n with_o reason_n and_o his_o other_o faculty_n viz._n from_o the_o contexture_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n or_o from_o some_o other_o cause_n you_o say_v i_o shall_v not_o wonder_v at_o the_o thing_n for_o that_o universal_a experience_n teach_v that_o so_o it_o be_v this_o i_o grant_v and_o therefore_o do_v not_o wonder_v at_o the_o be_v so_o of_o the_o thing_n but_o at_o the_o cause_n and_o manner_n how_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v viz._n from_o what_o original_a in_o man_n this_o effect_n can_v grow_v apparent_a it_o seem_v that_o affection_n and_o passion_n in_o man_n grow_v from_o the_o contexture_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o all_o his_o other_o power_n and_o faculty_n do_v and_o be_v natural_a to_o he_o for_o one_o that_o have_v they_o not_o be_v not_o a_o complete_a man._n but_o if_o their_o energy_n proceed_v from_o man_n soul_n a_o spirit_n govern_v this_o soul_n in_o act_v the_o affection_n and_o passion_n so_o vigorous_o seem_v to_o act_v blind_o and_o unintelligent_o or_o else_o that_o it_o be_v divide_v against_o itself_o and_o therefore_o its_o kingdom_n can_v stand_v but_o such_o lust_n as_o itself_o produce_v and_o act_v prevail_v to_o overthrow_v its_o government_n and_o bring_v the_o poor_a indiscreet_a soul_n under_o the_o pestilent_a power_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n if_o thus_o it_o be_v not_o i_o desire_v you_o will_v answer_v what_o i_o object_n in_o this_o point_n which_o be_v that_o man_n soul_n act_v against_o reason_n and_o its_o own_o interest_n in_o so_o high_o actuate_a of_o these_o lust_n or_o which_o be_v far_o more_o likely_a that_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v not_o intelligent_a for_o what_o you_o say_v concern_v st._n paul_n text_n rom._n 9_o i_o hold_v with_o you_o that_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n do_v testify_v a_o power_n in_o man_n to_o act_v for_o his_o own_o advancement_n in_o piety_n and_o towards_o future_a happiness_n and_o i_o assent_n to_o that_o opinion_n the_o rather_o for_o that_o the_o same_o be_v consonant_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o mankind_n but_o to_o agree_v this_o opinion_n with_o st._n paul_n text_n be_v beyond_o my_o capacity_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o know_v your_o manner_n of_o do_v it_o you_o mention_v ill_a effect_n from_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o materiality_n omnia_fw-la tuta_fw-la timens_fw-la consonant_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o zeal_n and_o affection_n that_o in_o your_o exhortation_n you_o have_v a_o great_a respect_n to_o the_o resurrection_n and_o last_o judgement_n i_o think_v to_o be_v well_o do_v and_o upon_o very_o firm_a ground_n but_o for_o the_o immateriality_n it_o seem_v no_o
maintain_v the_o truth_n but_o say_v you_o i_o can_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o materiality_n be_v a_o truth_n i_o grant_v that_o i_o be_o not_o sure_a but_o i_o will_v be_v sure_a if_o i_o know_v how_o to_o be_v so_o and_o therefore_o i_o apply_v to_o you_o for_o obtain_v your_o chief_a argument_n against_o it_o and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o do_v so_o to_o any_o other_o likely_a person_n capable_a to_o assist_v i_o in_o search_v the_o truth_n concern_v it_o and_o therefore_o in_o my_o observation_n upon_o dr._n bentley_n sermon_n entitle_v matter_n and_o motion_n can_v think_v i_o have_v request_v and_o even_o provoke_v he_o to_o perform_v his_o promise_n make_v in_o that_o sermon_n viz._n that_o he_o will_v make_v good_a proof_n of_o the_o soul_n immateriality_n from_o some_o positive_a ground_n rational_a or_o scriptural_a for_o that_o his_o tell_v we_o that_o god_n can_v make_v man_n and_o act_v they_o by_o a_o material_a spirit_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n but_o by_o a_o immaterial_a intelligent_a spirit_n seem_v to_o i_o precarious_a erroneus_fw-la and_o arbitrary_a in_o he_o and_o i_o think_v i_o may_v as_o well_o say_v god_n can_v make_v man_n and_o act_v he_o by_o a_o material_a spirit_n as_o well_o as_o he_o have_v do_v with_o his_o inferior_a creature_n and_o for_o aught_o that_o hitherto_o appear_v to_o i_o i_o think_v it_o most_o likely_a that_o he_o have_v so_o do_v this_o finish_v my_o reply_n to_o my_o friend_n three_o opposition_n after_o which_o i_o receive_v a_o four_o paper_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n dated_n 6._o nou._n 93_o divide_v into_o 8_o paragraph_n 1._o paragraph_n concern_v only_o the_o intent_n or_o meaning_n of_o paul_n in_o his_o term_n of_o nature_n whether_o intend_v absolute_o in_o puris_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la or_o cultivate_v by_o education_n rule_n or_o example_n 2._o paragraph_n be_v concern_v my_o expression_n of_o make_v man_n trust_v in_o a_o lye_n 3._o paragraph_n i_o reply_v to_o it_o you_o seem_v to_o think_v that_o god_n can_v make_v matter_n cogitative_n and_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v in_o his_o power_n and_o we_o be_v agree_v in_o that_o but_o you_o think_v god_n have_v not_o do_v so_o i_o think_v he_o have_v do_v so_o and_o this_o it_o seem_v need_v not_o be_v determine_v but_o remain_v a_o dissension_n without_o make_v it_o a_o difference_n the_o proof_n on_o either_o side_n appear_v a_o very_a great_a difficulty_n 4._o paragraph_n desire_v to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o what_o be_v moral_o good_a or_o bad_a ground_v in_o nature_n unassisted_a by_o rule_n education_n or_o institution_n you_o cite_v a_o instance_n in_o cain_n who_o you_o think_v know_v he_o have_v sin_v in_o kill_v his_o brother_n and_o that_o before_o his_o nature_n be_v assist_v by_o rule_n or_o positive_a institution_n here_o i_o say_v be_v two_o assertion_n first_o that_o he_o know_v the_o fact_n to_o be_v wicked_a next_o he_o know_v this_o by_o simple_a nature_n unassisted_a by_o any_o rule_n or_o institution_n whatsoever_o to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o the_o text_n that_o he_o know_v that_o his_o fact_n to_o be_v a_o crime_n you_o say_v it_o appear_v upon_o the_o margin_n the_o text_n say_v my_o punishment_n be_v great_a than_o i_o can_v bear_v the_o margin_n say_v my_o iniquity_n be_v great_a than_o can_v be_v forgive_v evident_a it_o be_v that_o the_o complaint_n succeed_v immediate_o to_o the_o sentence_n pronounce_v after_o that_o fact_n which_o induce_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o applicable_a to_o the_o punishment_n rather_o than_o to_o the_o sin_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o read_v put_v into_o the_o text_n by_o our_o translator_n be_v more_o likely_a to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o proper_a read_n than_o that_o upon_o the_o margin_n but_o if_o that_o which_o you_o pretend_v shall_v be_v admit_v and_o the_o marginal_a read_n shall_v be_v accept_v yet_o it_o seem_v the_o state_n of_o cain_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o a_o state_n of_o bare_a and_o simple_a nature_n unassisted_a by_o institution_n or_o rule_n for_o adam_n be_v divine_o instruct_v and_o probable_o bring_v up_o his_o child_n under_o discipline_n or_o a_o directive_n education_n they_o be_v teach_v the_o use_n of_o sacrifice_v and_o vers_fw-la 7._o god_n himself_o give_v cain_n direction_n for_o his_o instruction_n in_o morality_n and_o piety_n hence_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v your_o instance_n of_o cain_n do_v not_o enough_o prove_v that_o conscience_n without_o rule_n or_o instruction_n be_v a_o natural_a guide_n to_o direct_v man_n in_o their_o action_n able_a to_o make_v a_o true_a distinction_n betwixt_o evil_n and_o good_a rom._n 5.13_o for_o until_o the_o law_n sin_n be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v when_o there_o be_v no_o law_n and_o chap._n 7.7_o i_o have_v not_o know_v sin_n but_o by_o the_o law_n verse_n 13._o sin_n by_o the_o commandment_n become_v exceed_v sinful_a viz._n until_o or_o before_o the_o law_n bad_a action_n be_v sin_n but_o not_o impute_v because_o not_o know_v to_o be_v sin_n but_o when_o institution_n and_o law_n have_v detect_v or_o discover_v to_o mankind_n the_o sin_n of_o such_o action_n viz._n that_o they_o be_v sin_n against_o god_n and_o his_o law_n this_o knowledge_n make_v that_o which_o before_o be_v a_o sin_n though_o not_o impute_v to_o become_v by_o such_o revelation_n exceed_v sinful_a first_o a_o sin_n in_o itself_o and_o next_o as_o make_v know_v to_o the_o actor_n by_o the_o law_n or_o some_o other_o institution_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n you_o give_v no_o far_o or_o other_o answer_n to_o what_o i_o have_v large_o speak_v concern_v the_o nature_n and_o operation_n of_o conscience_n in_o man_n i_o desire_v to_o know_v your_o apprehension_n concern_v the_o same_o and_o your_o silence_n therein_o seem_v to_o admit_v of_o my_o conception_n thereupon_o as_o firm_a or_o probable_a 5._o paragraph_n you_o say_v i_o desire_v to_o know_v of_o you_o whence_o humane_a affection_n and_o their_o power_n grow_v you_o answer_v they_o grow_v from_o the_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n and_o the_o curse_n attend_v it_o to_o evince_v which_o it_o seem_v you_o shall_v show_v what_o man_n be_v nature_n be_v before_o the_o fall_n and_o wherein_o and_o how_o far_o the_o same_o become_v corrupt_v upon_o that_o occasion_n but_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o i_o think_v you_o neither_o know_v nor_o have_v mean_n to_o discover_v and_o that_o therefore_o we_o be_v drive_v to_o consider_v humane_a nature_n as_o we_o now_o find_v it_o so_o consider_v it_o be_v find_v and_o you_o grant_v that_o affection_n and_o passion_n have_v a_o very_a great_a power_n in_o dispose_v of_o humane_a action_n and_o the_o application_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o same_o that_o they_o do_v very_o often_o and_o most_o common_o overpower_v and_o mislead_v the_o national_a faculty_n and_o its_o dependency_n and_o drive_v or_o draw_v the_o person_n soul_n and_o body_n into_o very_o impure_a and_o wicked_a practice_n even_o reclamante_fw-la ratione_fw-la and_o maugre_o all_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o ordinary_o they_o meet_v with_o in_o mankind_n and_o these_o affection_n ambition_n covetousness_n lust_n and_o the_o passion_n wrath_n and_o fear_n be_v as_o natural_a to_o man_n as_o his_o vital_a and_o rational_a faculty_n be_v all_o man_n have_v they_o and_o one_o who_o have_v they_o not_o be_v not_o perfect_a in_o his_o nature_n the_o beast_n have_v they_o viz._n lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_n and_o they_o act_v with_o as_o much_o violence_n and_o power_n in_o the_o beast_n as_o in_o the_o man_n and_o our_o first_o parent_n have_v they_o before_o the_o fall_n the_o woman_n see_v the_o tree_n be_v good_a for_o food_n and_o pleasant_a to_o the_o taste_n hereby_o be_v her_o lust_n tempt_v and_o a_o fruit_n desirable_a to_o make_v one_o wise_a here_o be_v her_o ambition_n tempt_v and_o by_o these_o affection_n satan_n prevail_v as_o among_o man_n of_o our_o time_n he_o daily_o do_v to_o draw_v our_o first_o parent_n into_o the_o ruinous_a accomplishment_n of_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n i_o say_v then_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n appear_v to_o grow_v not_o as_o a_o effect_n of_o adam_n fall_n but_o as_o a_o fruit_n of_o natural_a production_n and_o from_o the_o same_o principle_n and_o original_n that_o his_o nutritive_a generative_a and_o other_o vital_a power_n do_v grow_v that_o his_o other_o sensitive_a and_o his_o rational_a faculty_n do_v also_o grow_v they_o seem_v to_o have_v one_o same_o original_a and_o that_o they_o be_v as_o natural_a to_o man_n as_o any_o of_o the_o other_o be_v and_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v no_o more_o detriment_n or_o vitiate_a quality_n from_o the_o fall_n than_o the_o other_o
death_n and_o the_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o luke_n word_n in_o relate_v of_o that_o fact_n do_v not_o import_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o so_o it_o seem_v for_o peter_n 1_o pet._n 4.13_o and_o 2_o pet._n 3.11_o and_o 12.13_o etc._n etc._n so_o 1_o joh._n 2.28_o and_o 3.2_o all_o import_v they_o know_v of_o no_o state_n between_o death_n and_o the_o resurrection_n and_o consequent_o of_o no_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n page_n 12._o he_o quote_v 2_o cor._n 5.8_o if_o absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o present_a with_o the_o lord_n which_o i_o have_v in_o a_o few_o leave_v before_o large_o expound_v to_o a_o sense_n far_o different_a from_o the_o author_n intent_n he_o cite_v 2_o cor._n 4.16_o of_o the_o outward_a and_o inward_a man_n which_o i_o say_v intend_v the_o two_o faculty_n viz._n sensitive_a or_o passionate_a and_o the_o rational_a pag._n 13._o say_v the_o soul_n be_v a_o substance_n i_o grant_v it_o so_o though_o material_a for_o so_o be_v heart_n brain_n etc._n etc._n he_o say_v affection_n and_o passion_n habit_n and_o art_n and_o science_n be_v lodge_v and_o seat_v and_o root_v in_o the_o soul_n and_o spring_n from_o it_o all_o this_o i_o deny_v and_o say_v they_o be_v all_o lodge_v seat_v and_o root_v in_o the_o man_n and_o spring_n from_o and_o be_v perfect_v by_o the_o contexture_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n he_o say_v the_o soul_n in_o moses_n be_v text_n be_v a_o live_a active_a be_v of_o itself_o as_o oppose_v to_o matter_n and_o body_n this_o i_o deny_v and_o say_v that_o as_o the_o body_n can_v move_v itself_o without_o the_o soul_n so_o neither_o the_o soul_n without_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n be_v in_o the_o body_n as_o its_o proper_a form_n or_o active_a principle_n that_o it_o have_v no_o proper_a place_n but_o the_o body_n nor_o have_v it_o any_o quicken_a power_n without_o the_o body_n it_o can_v quicken_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o the_o body_n nor_o do_v it_o act_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o body_n he_o say_v moses_n in_o the_o text_n call_v it_o a_o live_a soul_n this_o say_v i_o be_v a_o apparent_a mistake_n for_o the_o text_n say_v not_o that_o the_o breath_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n but_o the_o man_n do_v so_o the_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n alias_o person_n he_o say_v take_v mere_a matter_n and_o do_v what_o you_o will_v with_o it_o you_o can_v never_o make_v it_o see_v feel_v etc._n etc._n mark_v his_o consequence_n ergo_fw-la god_n can_v effect_v it_o he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v you_o can_v make_v a_o dog_n or_o a_o mouse_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n pag._n 14._o in_o proof_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v be_v a_o separable_a spirit_n he_o cites_n luke_n 23.46_o and_o act_v 7.29_o i_o say_v that_o in_o these_o place_n by_o the_o term_n of_o spirit_n the_o person_n recommend_v themselves_o to_o god_n as_o david_n in_o his_o full_a life_n use_v the_o very_a same_o word_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n intend_v his_o whole_a person_n also_o christ_n make_v his_o soul_n a_o offer_n for_o sin_n intend_v his_o whole_a person_n here_o he_o also_o cite_v solomon_n text_n viz._n the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o concern_v which_o expression_n i_o refer_v to_o what_o have_v before_o be_v speak_v of_o it_o cites_n heb._n 12.9_o you_o have_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v now_o rather_o so_o to_o the_o father_n of_o spirit_n viz._n say_v i_o of_o angel_n and_o all_o other_o creature_n cites_n again_o zech._n 12.1_o yet_o can_v do_v not_o deny_v act_v 17.25_o that_o god_n give_v to_o all_o life_n and_o breath_n and_o all_o thing_n ergo_fw-la to_o plant_n infect_v and_o brute_n as_o well_o as_o to_o men._n he_o say_v other_o soul_n flow_v not_o from_o god_n by_o creation_n but_o man_n be_v do_v i_o have_v deny_v such_o creation_n and_o i_o think_v he_o have_v not_o prove_v it_o i_o have_v grant_v man_n soul_n enkindled_n by_o god_n inspiration_n and_o so_o i_o think_v for_o the_o brute_n they_o have_v their_o first_o breath_n from_o he_o and_o from_o that_o time_n man_n and_o brute_n have_v be_v generate_v perfect_o according_a to_o their_o first_o pattern_n pag._n 9_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o soul_n nature_n be_v so_o spiritual_a and_o sublime_a that_o it_o can_v be_v perfect_o know_v by_o the_o most_o acute_a and_o penetrate_a understanding_n but_o be_v come_v to_o page_n 15._o he_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v a_o substance_n as_o incorporeal_a as_o other_o spirit_n be_v that_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o have_v no_o extension_n of_o part_n it_o have_v no_o dimension_n or_o figure_n but_o i_o grant_v none_o of_o all_o these_o nor_o do_v he_o offer_v to_o prove_v any_o of_o they_o he_o make_v it_o a_o vast_a wonder_n that_o such_o a_o spirit_n as_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n shall_v be_v so_o tie_v and_o link_v to_o a_o clod_n of_o clay_n the_o body_n that_o it_o can_v by_o no_o art_n or_o power_n free_a itself_o and_o i_o confess_v his_o sort_n of_o soul_n be_v very_o productive_a of_o strange_a and_o unlikely_a consequence_n but_o to_o my_o sort_n of_o soul_n all_o be_v in_o great_a congruity_n i_o say_v there_o be_v no_o wonder_n at_o all_o but_o very_o congruous_a that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n shall_v be_v so_o affect_v and_o affix_v one_o to_o another_o for_o they_o be_v both_o of_o a_o piece_n be_v generate_v grow_v stand_v decay_n and_o fall_v together_o and_o they_o rejoice_v and_o suffer_v share_n and_o share_v alike_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o difference_n between_o humane_a soul_n and_o body_n than_o material_a spirit_n differ_v from_o their_o body_n and_o as_o they_o do_v and_o suffer_v together_o in_o this_o world_n so_o may_v it_o be_v expect_v for_o the_o world_n to_o come_v they_o will_v rise_v be_v judge_v and_o recompense_v together_o according_a to_o their_o joint_a behaviour_n use_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o earthly_a life_n pag._n 17._o he_o produce_v des_n cartes_n principle_n and_o dr._n bentley_n viz._n i_o know_v that_o i_o think_v and_o that_o matter_n and_o motion_n can_v think_v ergo_fw-la there_o must_v be_v a_o spirit_n to_o act_v think_v in_o i_o this_o i_o grant_v but_o say_v he_o this_o must_v be_v a_o spirit_n immaterial_a intelligent_a for_o god_n can_v act_v all_o man_n faculty_n by_o a_o material_a spirit_n nor_o make_v matter_n cogitative_n i_o think_v he_o can_v do_v all_o this_o and_o thereupon_o i_o be_o at_o issue_n with_o dr._n bentley_n and_o i_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v so_o do_v and_o if_o god_n can_v act_v man_n sense_n and_o reason_n by_o a_o material_a spirit_n and_o have_v so_o do_v all_o our_o author_n allegation_n here_o be_v thereby_o answer_v and_o make_v ineffectual_a which_o otherwise_o do_v not_o seem_v very_o material_a he_o say_v no_o man_n can_v think_v that_o combine_a fire_n air_n water_n and_o earth_n shall_v make_v the_o lump_n of_o it_o to_o know_v or_o consider_v and_o i_o grant_v this_o can_v be_v do_v by_o man_n but_o by_o what_o consequence_n can_v it_o be_v say_v ergo_fw-la god_n can_v do_v it_o i_o say_v such_o a_o ergo_fw-la will_v have_v no_o force_n or_o coercion_n in_o it_o and_o i_o far_o say_v soul_n can_v think_v or_o understand_v without_o their_o body_n he_o say_v we_o see_v manifest_o that_o upon_o division_n of_o the_o body_n viz._n a_o leg_n or_o a_o arm_n cut_v off_o the_o soul_n remain_v entire_a viz._n the_o understanding_n affection_n etc._n etc._n i_o grant_v that_o the_o vital_a and_o rational_a faculty_n do_v in_o such_o case_n still_o remain_v entire_a but_o by_o blow_n or_o wound_n in_o the_o head_n the_o understanding_n and_o memory_n may_v be_v spoil_v and_o yet_o the_o vital_a and_o generative_a part_n remain_v firm_a so_o as_o his_o instance_n prove_v no_o more_o but_o that_o the_o loss_n of_o a_o member_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o enliven_v it_o affect_v not_o other_o member_n or_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o so_o much_o but_o that_o they_o can_v still_o exercise_v their_o proper_a faculty_n as_o before_o and_o this_o be_v very_o well_o comportant_fw-la with_o a_o material_a spirit_n for_o his_o tota_fw-la in_o to_z to_z &_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la i_o have_v quote_v melanchton_n who_o say_v the_o expression_n be_v common_o father_v upon_o arist_n but_o it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o his_o write_n nor_o be_v the_o thing_n true_a for_o say_v he_o if_o we_o shall_v take_v the_o humane_a soul_n for_o a_o immaterial_a spirit_n we_o know_v such_o a_o spirit_n can_v be_v but_o in_o unico_fw-la loco_fw-la at_o a_o time_n and_o not_o in_o tota_fw-la in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o
notwithstanding_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n verse_n 15._o we_o have_v testify_v of_o god_n that_o he_o raise_v up_o christ_n who_o he_o raise_v not_o up_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o verse_n 18._o then_o they_o also_o which_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v but_o if_o at_o death_n they_o go_v to_o heaven_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v perish_v though_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n thus_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o immediate_a avolation_n to_o heaven_n that_o of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o main_a comfort_n and_o support_v of_o christian_a believer_n be_v not_o only_o undermine_v but_o be_v make_v a_o kind_n of_o insipid_a and_o useless_a doctrine_n not_o worthy_a to_o be_v remember_v by_o our_o author_n or_o other_o zealous_a proselyte_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o immateriality_n let_v they_o alone_o as_o person_n hood-winked_n by_o a_o old_a mistake_a opinion_n to_o lead_v those_o who_o follow_v they_o into_o lesser_a fall_n or_o more_o dangerous_a precipice_n but_o our_o endeavour_n be_v to_o detect_v the_o fallacy_n of_o that_o opinion_n which_o i_o pray_v god_n prosper_v not_o otherwise_o than_o as_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o truth_n and_o verity_n to_o this_o pag._n 46._o our_o author_n go_v on_o in_o a_o prove_a manner_n and_o i_o have_v trace_v he_o according_o page_n by_o page_n but_o in_o his_o progress_n he_o now_o begin_v to_o make_v inference_n and_o raise_v doctrine_n of_o which_o i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o take_v notice_n but_o intend_v to_o pass_v over_o they_o without_o omit_v any_o thing_n which_o i_o think_v to_o be_v material_a and_o prove_v pag._n 48._o he_o say_v happy_a have_v it_o be_v for_o bad_a man_n if_o their_o soul_n have_v be_v like_o the_o beast_n extinguishable_a in_o death_n for_o then_o all_o their_o misery_n have_v end_v there_o i_o say_v mark_v what_o little_a or_o no_o account_n he_o make_v here_o of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o solemn_o plain_o and_o full_o publish_v and_o promise_v in_o the_o gospel_n he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o name_n or_o remember_v such_o a_o thing_n which_o will_v full_o avoid_v his_o positive_a determination_n pag._n 49._o say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v only_o capable_a of_o social_n glory_n in_o partnership_n with_o the_o body_n and_o can_v exert_v its_o own_o power_n nor_o enjoy_v happiness_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o body_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o sleep_a interval_n say_v he_o take_v its_o rise_n from_o this_o error_n say_v i_o from_o this_o truth_n only_o the_o holder_n of_o this_o opinion_n do_v not_o penetrate_v to_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o truth_n viz._n the_o temporal_a extinguishment_n of_o the_o soul_n they_o think_v it_o have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n but_o in_o a_o limbus_n or_o dormitory_n where_o it_o neither_o do_v nor_o suffer_v any_o thing_n want_v a_o capacity_n to_o do_v so_o without_o the_o body_n i_o say_v the_o temporary_a extinguishment_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o this_o dormitory_n and_o be_v far_o more_o agreeable_a to_o nature_n and_o reason_n he_o say_v the_o soul_n do_v not_o necessary_o depend_v upon_o the_o body_n in_o its_o operation_n but_o that_o it_o can_v live_v and_o act_v out_o of_o a_o body_n as_o well_o as_o in_o it_o i_o say_v what_o be_v petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la if_o this_o be_v not_o and_o so_o be_v all_o the_o rest_n which_o follow_v here_o he_o quote_v luke_o 23.43_o and_o phil._n 1.23_o both_o before_o full_o answer_v pag._n 50._o he_o say_v all_o soul_n by_o nature_n be_v as_o excellent_a one_o as_o another_o i_o say_v there_o be_v great_a difference_n among_o they_o and_o we_o see_v it_o plain_o in_o the_o different_a performance_n and_o perfection_n of_o man_n to_o be_v refer_v partly_o to_o body_n and_o organ_n and_o partly_o to_o the_o vigour_n purity_n and_o brightness_n of_o the_o material_a soul_n in_o they_o he_o cite_v ezek._n 48.4_o all_o soul_n be_v i_o this_o i_o say_v intend_v person_n the_o soul_n that_o sin_n shall_v sure_o die_v viz._n the_o person_n verse_n 5._o if_o a_o man_n be_v just_a etc._n etc._n show_v soul_n here_o intend_v person_n pag._n 51._o and_o be_v but_o a_o fancy_n but_o i_o say_v redemption_n be_v not_o of_o soul_n only_o but_o of_o person_n pag._n 52._o cite_v 3_o joh._n 2._o i_o wish_v that_o thou_o may_v prosper_v and_o be_v in_o health_n even_o as_o thy_o soul_n prosper_v i_o say_v this_o intend_v thy_o person_n and_o temporal_a affair_n as_o thy_o practice_n of_o piety_n then_o he_o say_v there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_o soul_n and_o soul_n in_o respect_n of_o natural_a gift_n and_o ability_n of_o mind_n and_o the_o soul_n be_v more_o vigorous_a when_o the_o body_n and_o its_o organ_n be_v more_o sound_a and_o apt_a and_o say_v the_o same_o that_o i_o say_v before_o against_o what_o himself_o say_v before_o pag._n 54._o say_v those_o who_o perish_v will_v find_v themselves_o as_o capable_a of_o blessedness_n as_o those_o that_o obtain_v it_o i_o say_v perhaps_o their_o bodily_a temper_n and_o capacity_n can_v not_o be_v equal_o assistant_n to_o their_o soul_n pag._n 59_o say_v the_o food_n of_o every_o creature_n be_v agreeable_a to_o its_o nature_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n do_v not_o live_v upon_o material_a thing_n as_o the_o body_n do_v i_o say_v the_o soul_n can_v live_v in_o the_o body_n without_o food_n and_o if_o not_o in_o the_o body_n than_o not_o where_o for_o i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o place_n where_o it_o can_v live_v but_o in_o the_o body_n and_o each_o in_o its_o own_o body_n and_o not_o out_o of_o that_o body_n to_o which_o it_o be_v con-natural_a he_o cite_v luke_o 12.19_o soul_n take_v thy_o ease_n eat_v drink_v and_o be_v merry_a and_o say_v the_o soul_n can_v do_v so_o i_o say_v soul_n here_o as_o in_o very_a many_o place_n intend_v person_n or_o the_o man_n and_o yet_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v refresh_v and_o renew_v by_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o can_v subsist_v without_o they_o pag._n 61._o cites_n rom._n 1.9_o paul_n say_v god_n who_o i_o serve_v with_o my_o spirit_n add_v paul_n dare_v appeal_v to_o god_n who_o search_v his_o heart_n as_o if_o he_o take_v heart_n and_o spirit_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n here_o and_o to_o that_o i_o agree_v pag._n 63._o to_o what_o he_o say_v here_o i_o answer_v humane_a apprehension_n of_o a_o world_n to_o come_v may_v full_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o grant_v that_o such_o apprehension_n do_v grow_v from_o man_n nature_n pure_o or_o naked_o consider_v but_o nature_n cultivate_v by_o education_n or_o doctrine_n he_o cite_v rom._n 2.14_o the_o gentile_n do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n i_o say_v this_o intend_v cultivate_v nature_n or_o a_o universal_a education_n we_o find_v all_o people_n have_v speech_n and_o yet_o man_n can_v speak_v without_o be_v teach_v and_o those_o who_o teach_v they_o to_o speak_v give_v they_o impression_n of_o morality_n and_o religion_n viz._n nurse_n and_o mother_n pag._n 65._o i_o say_v to_o this_o he_o who_o engage_v against_o man_n do_v so_o against_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n for_o they_o be_v inseparable_a by_o any_o thing_n but_o death_n pag._n 68_o this_o discourse_n by_o the_o word_n soul_n intend_v heart_n or_o affection_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o man._n pag._n 70._o he_o say_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v knit_v together_o by_o the_o feeble_a hand_n of_o the_o breath_n in_o their_o nostril_n but_o his_o quotation_n speak_v more_o true_o and_o i_o say_v that_o union_n be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n and_o his_o handmaid_n nature_n that_o it_o spring_v ab_fw-la ovo_fw-la and_o both_o grow_v out_o of_o the_o same_o root_n or_o principle_n viz._n the_o seed_n in_o generation_n and_o be_v separable_a only_o by_o death_n he_o say_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n result_v from_o its_o union_n with_o the_o soul_n as_o james_n 2.26_o and_o i_o grant_v it_o pag._n 74._o cites_n psal_n 104.29_o when_o thou_o take_v away_o their_o breath_n they_o die_v and_o return_v to_o their_o dust_n this_o say_v i_o make_v soul_n and_o breath_n equivalent_a he_o cite_v psal_n 66.8_o god_n hold_v our_o soul_n in_o life_n this_o i_o say_v intend_v keep_v we_o alive_a viz._n our_o person_n pag._n 89._o cites_n revel_v 6.9_o and_o call_v the_o text_n a_o firm_a foundation_n for_o the_o soul_n immortality_n whereas_o this_o cry_n of_o soul_n under_o the_o altar_n be_v apparent_o parabolical_a and_o no_o more_o real_a than_o the_o voice_n of_o abel_n blood_n cry_v from_o the_o ground_n to_o god_n no_o more_o than_o the_o great_a red_a dragon_n draw_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o star_n with_o his_o tail_n
be_v obtain_v present_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n i_o say_v the_o word_n mention_v neither_o the_o one_o time_n nor_o the_o other_o nor_o it_o seem_v do_v intend_v the_o one_o any_o more_o than_o the_o other_o for_o they_o import_v a_o present_a be_v come_v to_o those_o advantage_n and_o not_o a_o future_a he_o confess_v here_o that_o humane_a wisdom_n can_v penetrate_v into_o the_o future_a state_n of_o soul_n and_o that_o man_n know_v but_o little_a of_o they_o i_o say_v can_v know_v just_a nothing_o of_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n pag._n 192._o he_o cite_v 1_o joh._n 3.2_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v i_o ask_v whence_o that_o will_v appear_v the_o text_n say_v it_o will_v appear_v at_o christ_n second_o come_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o know_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o which_o intimate_v man_n must_v stay_v till_o that_o time_n for_o such_o knowledge_n pag._n 196._o he_o say_v when_o death_n come_v the_o soul_n dispute_v its_o possession_n of_o the_o body_n with_o he_o from_o member_n to_o member_n like_o soldier_n in_o a_o storm_v garrison_n and_o at_o last_o lose_v the_o royal_a fort_n intimate_v that_o his_o soul_n be_v be_v be_v like_o that_o of_o death_n be_v viz._n no_o real_a subsistence_n but_o a_o imagination_n pag._n 197._o say_v the_o fall_a asleep_a in_o death_n or_o sleep_v in_o jesus_n must_v not_o be_v stretch_v to_o a_o length_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o offer_v no_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o say_v that_o it_o concern_v the_o whole_a person_n soul_n as_o well_o as_o body_n and_o likely_a will_n stretch_v itself_o to_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n pag._n 202._o say_v angel_n carry_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n and_o for_o proof_n cite_v the_o parable_n of_o dives_n his_o only_a ground_n for_o that_o opinion_n which_o i_o say_v be_v too_o sandy_a to_o support_v it_o for_o that_o here_o be_v no_o real_a fact_n relate_v but_o only_o a_o similitude_n fit_v to_o the_o common_a jewish_a opinion_n of_o that_o time_n pag._n 203._o grant_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o such_o conveyance_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o it_o be_v use_v for_o state_n or_o decorum_n all_o this_o seem_v but_o his_o fancy_n and_o he_o give_v no_o other_o proof_n either_o of_o the_o one_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o fact_n or_o of_o the_o other_o viz._n that_o it_o be_v for_o state_n and_o decorum_n pag._n 204._o say_v the_o presence_n of_o angel_n or_o spirit_n affright_v the_o spirit_n not_o only_o of_o man_n but_o of_o beast_n and_o thence_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o consent_n but_o of_o such_o a_o consent_n he_o offer_v no_o proof_n nor_o that_o there_o be_v a_o soul_n different_a from_o the_o material_a which_o i_o say_v be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n both_o in_o man_n and_o beast_n which_o by_o the_o production_n of_o like_a fear_n both_o in_o man_n and_o beast_n at_o the_o appearance_n of_o spirit_n seem_v to_o i_o somewhat_o confirm_v pag._n 205._o deliver_v but_o his_o own_o fancy_n thereupon_o pag._n 206._o he_o ask_v what_o form_n shape_v or_o figure_n can_v the_o fancy_n of_o man_n cast_v his_o own_o soul_n into_o as_o a_o help_n to_o understand_v its_o nature_n i_o answer_v into_o none_o at_o all_o i_o have_v no_o certain_a form_n of_o itself_o and_o of_o he_o may_v be_v say_v ex_fw-la nihilo_fw-la nihil_fw-la fit_a but_o if_o such_o a_o soul_n there_o be_v one_o may_v form_n a_o idea_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o of_o any_o other_o spirit_n and_o for_o rapture_n i_o have_v say_v the_o understanding_n fancy_n and_o memory_n may_v be_v effectual_o wrought_v upon_o and_o affect_v pag._n 214._o say_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_o go_v immediate_o to_o glory_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o person_n death_n and_o offer_v proof_n luk._n 23.43_o of_o the_o thief_n also_o luk._n 16.22_o of_o lazarus_n be_v carry_v and_o phil._n 2.23_o a_o desire_n to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n all_o cite_v and_o answer_v before_o pag._n 215._o speak_v but_o his_o own_o fancy_n and_o without_o proof_n pag._n 225._o say_v good_a soul_n depart_v have_v a_o satisfy_a apprehension_n though_o no_o perfect_a comprehension_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o mention_n the_o see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n whereas_o st._n john_n teach_v we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v at_o his_o second_o come_v we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n do_v not_o say_v see_v god_n but_o the_o author_n produce_v no_o proof_n of_o any_o sort_n of_o see_v after_o death_n pag._n 234._o say_v those_o who_o go_v to_o heaven_n before_o christ_n ascension_n be_v full_o at_o rest_n in_o god_n and_o yet_o upon_o christ_n come_v to_o heaven_n their_o happiness_n be_v advance_v cites_n to_o prove_v this_o heb._n 11.40_o god_n have_v provide_v some_o better_a thing_n for_o we_o that_o they_o without_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v make_v perfect_a to_o this_o i_o say_v it_o rather_o seem_v to_o prove_v a_o stay_n of_o perfection_n till_o the_o whole_a number_n be_v accomplish_v at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o revelation_n also_o do_v pag._n 243._o say_v it_o be_v too_o great_a a_o difficulty_n to_o trace_v the_o soul_n beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o this_o world_n i_o say_v it_o be_v so_o to_o trace_v his_o sort_n of_o soul_n in_o this_o world_n and_o i_o deny_v that_o his_o text_n prove_v that_o death_n perfect_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o just_a which_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v till_o the_o number_n be_v complete_v at_o the_o resurrection_n pag._n 244._o say_v we_o have_v more_o acquaintance_n with_o soul_n than_o with_o angel_n he_o mean_v with_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n and_o then_o i_o deny_v it_o for_o angel_n and_o spirit_n have_v appear_v and_o be_v otherwise_o sensible_o perceive_v to_o act_v but_o we_o know_v not_o that_o ever_o a_o humane_a soul_n by_o itself_o be_v know_v or_o perceive_v so_o to_o do_v pag._n 252._o he_o say_v the_o radical_a moisture_n which_o be_v daily_o consume_v by_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n must_v needs_o be_v spend_v ere_o long_o here_o we_o agree_v pag._n 266._o say_v separate_a soul_n be_v capable_a of_o perform_v god_n command_n as_o well_o as_o angel_n be_v this_o i_o deny_v and_o he_o offer_v no_o proof_n he_o say_v some_o depart_a soul_n have_v return_v and_o appear_v in_o this_o world_n instance_n in_o moses_n and_o elias_n and_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n which_o appear_v at_o christ_n resurrection_n to_o this_o i_o say_v all_z these_o appearance_n be_v of_o body_n except_o moses_n and_o of_o he_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v what_o appear_v pag._n 267._o say_v apparition_n as_o of_o dead_a person_n be_v not_o indeed_o so_o but_o be_v act_n of_o other_o sort_n of_o spirit_n to_o this_o i_o agree_v pag._n 273._o man_n oft_o meet_v a_o mortal_a enemy_n spirit_n in_o the_o disguise_n of_o a_o dead_a friend_n pag._n 274._o say_v that_o after_o the_o resurrection_n the_o raise_a shall_v know_v one_o another_o and_o talk_v and_o converse_v but_o till_o that_o time_n soul_n depart_v do_v converse_v only_o with_o god_n how_o prove_v he_o this_o not_o at_o all_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o bare_a invention_n yes_o say_v he_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o for_o if_o soul_n can_v act_v thus_o before_o the_o resurrection_n will_v be_v needless_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n i_o say_v soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n and_o see_v and_o enjoy_v god_n and_o heaven_n before_o that_o time_n make_v the_o resurrection_n of_o small_a value_n and_o little_a signification_n pag._n 284._o say_v it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o soul_n concern_v itself_o single_o be_v make_v perfect_a and_o enjoy_v blessedness_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o body_n he_o tell_v we_o not_o who_o have_v make_v this_o confession_n he_o quote_v word_n of_o alstedius_n here_o but_o they_o do_v not_o import_v such_o a_o confession_n but_o whosoever_o do_v confess_v it_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o i_o deny_v it_o ment_fw-la &_o manu_fw-la and_o he_o shall_v prove_v it_o but_o do_v not_o pag._n 285._o cites_n 2_o thes_n 4.15_o it_o say_v those_o which_o sleep_v in_o jesus_n will_v god_n bring_v with_o he_o this_o say_v he_o must_v proper_o respect_v the_o body_n for_o the_o soul_n sleep_v not_o i_o say_v as_o much_o as_o the_o body_n do_v pag._n 304._o he_o say_v i_o shall_v rather_o choose_v to_o live_v mean_o then_o to_o die_v easy_o and_o if_o both_o part_n be_v to_o perish_v no_o man_n will_v die_v or_o desire_v it_o and_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o immortality_n say_v i_o prevail_v not_o with_o those_o who_o live_v at_o ease_n to_o desire_v death_n he_o say_v it_o will_v be_v a_o madness_n for_o
a_o soul_n to_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v if_o it_o think_v itself_o shall_v be_v extinguish_v i_o say_v no_o madness_n at_o all_o but_o a_o very_a reasonable_a and_o wise_a choice_n viz._n a_o desire_n to_o part_v with_o a_o troublesome_a and_o suffer_a life_n for_o the_o rest_n of_o death_n or_o sleep_v in_o christ_n in_o a_o assure_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n and_o of_o then_o receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n as_o paul_n case_n be_v and_o if_o our_o author_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n he_o love_v life_n better_a than_o ordinary_a he_o have_v also_o before_o say_v that_o the_o grave_n be_v a_o good_a hide_v place_n from_o the_o storm_n of_o the_o world_n which_o i_o there_o agree_v and_o so_o do_v most_o people_n pag._n 310._o cites_n 2_o tim._n 4.8_o a_o crown_n of_o life_n will_v be_v give_v to_o all_o who_o love_n christ_n appear_v i_o ask_v when_o shall_v this_o be_v do_v the_o text_n say_v at_o that_o day_n the_o author_n say_v this_o intend_v the_o day_n of_o man_n death_n no_o say_v i_o for_o that_o day_n intend_v one_o time_n appoint_v whereas_o day_n of_o death_n be_v divers_a and_o various_a therefore_o the_o day_n here_o intend_v the_o resurrection_n p._n 313._o say_v in_o death_n the_o soul_n attain_v its_o rest_n i_o say_v the_o man_n attain_v his_o rest_n in_o hope_n of_o a_o future_a happiness_n or_o fear_n of_o what_o may_v follow_v at_o that_o day_n pag._n 314._o say_v death_n final_o and_o certain_o cure_v seven_o several_a very_a great_a humane_a malady_n and_o therefore_o say_v i_o be_v much_o more_o desirable_a than_o a_o troublesome_a or_o afflict_a life_n pag._n 326._o say_v little_o do_v believer_n think_v what_o vision_n of_o god_n and_o ravish_a sight_n of_o christ_n the_o soul_n of_o their_o friend_n have_v when_o they_o be_v close_v their_o eye_n with_o tear_n i_o say_v little_a do_v our_o author_n know_v for_o their_o information_n in_o such_o case_n or_o for_o their_o comfort_n 1_o thes_n 4.13_o paul_n comfort_v people_n in_o such_o case_n by_o the_o hope_n only_o of_o a_o resurrection_n which_o give_v i_o a_o great_a assurance_n that_o he_o either_o know_v not_o of_o our_o author_n opinion_n or_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o he_o add_v evil_a day_n shall_v make_v god_n people_n willing_a to_o accept_v of_o a_o hide_v place_n in_o the_o grave_a as_o a_o special_a favour_n from_o god_n and_o i_o grant_v it_o and_o believe_v it_o often_o do_v so_o pag._n 322._o cites_n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o that_o may_v make_v paul_n desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ._n viz._n to_o rest_n or_o sleep_v in_o he_o pag._n 329._o cites_n heb._n 9.27_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o all_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o that_o the_o judgement_n i_o say_v this_o intend_v one_o judgement_n viz._n the_o last_o and_o that_o no_o intermediate_v judgement_n can_v be_v prove_v pag._n 334._o cites_n 1_o pet._n 3_o 19_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n and_o he_o say_v there_o be_v difficulty_n in_o this_o text_n and_o that_o aestius_n reckon_v no_o less_o than_o ten_o exposition_n of_o it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o very_a difficult_a scripture_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o almost_o all_o interpreter_n pag._n 335._o say_v what_o be_v call_v a_o soul_n whilst_o in_o the_o body_n after_o separation_n be_v proper_o call_v a_o spirit_n i_o deny_v then_o that_o ever_o it_o can_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o spirit_n pag._n 339._o he_o say_v conscience_n be_v the_o judge_n and_o prime_a guide_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o say_v of_o the_o man_n he_o say_v the_o will_n as_o potent_a as_o it_o be_v move_v not_o until_o the_o judgement_n come_v to_o a_o conclusion_n and_o this_o i_o agree_v pag._n 340._o he_o say_v every_o soul_n come_v to_o its_o particular_a judgement_n immediate_o after_o death_n to_o prove_v this_o he_o cites_n heb._n 9.27_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o all_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o that_o the_o judgement_n how_o this_o prove_v every_o man_n particular_a judgement_n at_o death_n i_o do_v not_o perceive_v it_o seem_v rather_o all_o man_n must_v die_v before_o this_o judgement_n and_o when_o all_o be_v dead_a than_o this_o judgement_n but_o there_o be_v no_o application_n of_o it_o to_o a_o particular_a judgement_n then_o he_o cites_n proverb_n 11.7_o when_o a_o wicked_a man_n die_v his_o expectation_n shall_v perish_v and_o the_o hope_n of_o unjust_a man_n perish_v i_o demand_v how_o this_o prove_v a_o particular_a judgement_n after_o each_o man_n death_n then_o he_o cites_n matth._n 7.22_o many_o will_v say_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n have_v not_o we_o do_v great_a work_n in_o thy_o name_n then_o will_v i_o profess_v to_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o thus_o he_o prove_v a_o particular_a judgement_n many_o will_v say_v in_o that_o day_n the_o great_a day_n and_o then_o i_o will_v say_v to_o they_o to_o those_o many_o such_o scripture_n as_o these_o he_o be_v force_v to_o use_v for_o proof_n of_o his_o particular_a judgement_n not_o that_o likely_a he_o or_o any_o man_n can_v think_v they_o good_a proof_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o because_o this_o sort_n of_o judgement_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o a_o separate_a soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n or_o hell_n without_o this_o sort_n of_o judgement_n there_o can_v be_v no_o truth_n in_o their_o tenet_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v prove_v or_o yield_v they_o can_v do_v it_o and_o i_o think_v he_o be_v as_o good_a not_o have_v offer_v at_o it_o as_o to_o have_v do_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n but_o neither_o i_o nor_o it_o seem_v he_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o do_v it_o better_o pag._n 350._o cites_n heb._n 4.3_o we_o which_o have_v believe_v do_v enter_v into_o rest._n i_o say_v this_o intend_v rest_n from_o their_o labour_n as_o the_o revelation_n express_v it_o and_o i_o do_v not_o find_v heaven_n in_o it_o pag._n 359._o say_v nothing_o more_o sure_a or_o awful_a than_o the_o day_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n i_o agree_v it_o pag._n 361._o cites_n matth._n 16.26_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n our_o great_a difference_n upon_o this_o text_n will_v be_v what_o be_v here_o intend_a by_o the_o word_n or_o term_n of_o soul_n i_o say_v that_o as_o in_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o other_o place_n so_o in_o this_o place_n the_o word_n soul_n intend_v the_o man_n self_n or_o his_o person_n or_o life_n ver._n 25._o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o but_o he_o that_o lose_v it_o for_o christ_n sake_n shall_v find_v it_o then_o follow_v our_o text_n with_o connexion_n for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o life_n and_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n or_o life_n once_o lose_v it_o can_v be_v redeem_v or_o recover_v nor_o recompense_v by_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n yet_o he_o that_o lose_v his_o life_n for_o christ_n sake_n shall_v find_v it_o for_o he_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a and_o as_o heb._n 11._o 35._o people_n be_v torture_v not_o accept_v deliverance_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v a_o better_a resurrection_n pag._n 362._o he_o quote_v a_o say_v to_o win_v venice_n and_o he_o hang_v at_o the_o gate_n of_o it_o what_o good_a will_v it_o do_v any_o man_n so_o say_v he_o of_o get_v a_o vast_a treasure_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o one_o life_n and_o i_o agree_v and_o say_v when_o a_o man_n be_v dead_a what_o good_a can_v all_o the_o world_n do_v he_o and_o this_o i_o take_v for_o the_o true_a mean_v of_o this_o text_n and_o our_o lord_n show_v how_o one_o that_o lose_v life_n for_o his_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o ver._n 26._o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o sound_v strong_o in_o exclusion_n of_o the_o particular_a judgement_n before_o speak_v of_o pag._n 363._o he_o magnify_v the_o expression_n or_o the_o term_n soul_n in_o this_o text_n and_o say_v that_o rock_n of_o diamond_n be_v not_o worth_a it_o i_o say_v they_o be_v not_o worth_a any_o man_n life_n to_o he_o and_o this_o the_o devil_n know_v when_o he_o say_v all_o that_o a_o man_n have_v will_v he_o give_v for_o his_o life_n
and_o so_o be_v the_o ordinary_a practice_n of_o mankind_n he_o say_v he_o who_o buy_v soul_n know_v the_o value_n of_o they_o i_o say_v soul_n be_v never_o buy_v alone_o but_o the_o redemption_n be_v of_o person_n common_o express_v in_o scripture_n by_o the_o term_n of_o soul_n and_o so_o be_v david_n expression_n to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o say_v it_o cost_v i_o more_o to_o redeem_v their_o soul_n viz._n to_o redeem_v they_o or_o their_o person_n pag._n 364._o say_v god_n create_v the_o soul_n as_o his_o rare_a masterpiece_n and_o the_o three_o person_n lay_v their_o head_n together_o to_o project_n it_o i_o have_v deny_v a_o separate_a creation_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o i_o do_v so_o still_o and_o do_v look_v upon_o his_o present_a oratory_n to_o be_v very_o inconsiderate_a pag._n 365._o he_o confound_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o rational_a faculty_n together_o or_o make_v they_o both_o one_o thing_n or_o mistake_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o pag._n 367._o all_o that_o he_o here_o say_v of_o the_o soul_n be_v proper_o applicable_a to_o the_o rational_a faculty_n he_o say_v no_o soul_n but_o man_n be_v marriageable_a unto_o christ._n if_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o the_o person_n i_o can_v not_o understand_v he_o for_o we_o never_o hear_v of_o a_o soul_n be_v be_v marry_v or_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n by_o its_o self_n single_o pag._n 369._o what_o he_o say_v here_o be_v do_v for_o soul_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o person_n pag._n 370._o say_v word_n shall_v come_v into_o judgement_n at_o the_o last_o day_n i_o say_v why_o not_o at_o the_o particular_a judgement_n if_o such_o a_o one_o there_o be_v pag._n 371._o he_o again_o here_o apply_v to_o the_o soul_n what_o belong_v to_o the_o person_n and_o i_o say_v the_o devil_n seek_v to_o devour_v not_o the_o soul_n only_o but_o the_o person_n pag._n 374._o still_o apply_v all_o to_o soul_n instead_o of_o person_n pag._n 375._o he_o quote_v three_o text_n but_o they_o all_o apply_v to_o person_n and_o solomon_n win_a soul_n intend_v person_n pag._n 379._o say_v he_o have_v prove_v that_o one_o soul_n be_v of_o more_o value_n than_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o say_v no_o otherwise_o than_o a_o man_n life_n be_v viz._n to_o himself_o it_o be_v so_o but_o not_o in_o itself_o or_o with_o any_o respect_n to_o other_o people_n pag._n 379._o say_v the_o soul_n be_v not_o make_v for_o the_o body_n but_o the_o body_n for_o it_o i_o say_v they_o be_v make_v for_o one_o another_o and_o be_v daily_o make_v viz._n procreate_v together_o pag._n 387._o cites_n a_o say_v as_o concern_v soul_n but_o it_o prove_v only_o of_o person_n and_o go_v on_o in_o the_o like_o apply_v to_o soul_n what_o be_v intend_v of_o person_n pag._n 390._o say_v soul_n can_v live_v upon_o food_n or_o earthly_a thing_n i_o say_v they_o do_v live_v upon_o food_n and_o earthly_a thing_n and_o can_v live_v without_o they_o pag._n 439._o and_o so_o to_o 441._o he_o pretend_v holy_a duty_n be_v not_o enough_o for_o christian_n viz._n nature_n improve_v by_o virtue_n and_o common_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n a_o holy_a unreprovable_a life_n rely_v on_o christ_n for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o support_v under_o sorrow_n and_o danger_n practise_v the_o commandment_n believe_v the_o creed_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n do_v as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v to_o sorrow_v for_o their_o failure_n strive_v to_o rise_v again_o and_o pray_v to_o god_n every_o day_n to_o assist_v they_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o save_o they_o by_o his_o goodness_n and_o christ_n suffering_n he_o insinuate_v that_o such_o ordinary_a practice_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o regeneration_n without_o heavenly_a temper_n and_o tendency_n of_o soul_n viz._n a_o singular_a claim_n and_o profession_n to_o grace_n and_o sanctification_n above_o ordinary_a i_o profess_v myself_o content_a with_o the_o former_a state_n and_o will_v give_v his_o proselyte_n leave_v to_o affect_v the_o late_a without_o condemn_v they_o so_o be_v that_o they_o act_n not_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi in_o justify_v themselves_o and_o despise_a other_o pag._n 449._o direct_v man_n to_o ask_v be_o i_o bear_v again_o be_o i_o a_o new_a creature_n i_o say_v baptism_n be_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n and_o mark_v 16.16_o he_o that_o believe_v and_o it_o baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o thus_o practise_v the_o jailor_n at_o philippi_n cornelius_n the_o captain_n and_o the_o aethiopian_a eunuch_n but_o he_o require_v a_o regenerate_v of_o the_o spirit_n i_o allow_v so_o appear_v as_o to_o make_v the_o fruit_n good_a but_o for_o his_o extraordinary_a elevation_n and_o motion_n of_o spirit_n i_o leave_v they_o to_o himself_o as_o a_o fervour_n of_o fancy_n pag._n 464._o say_v your_o election_n be_v only_o secure_v by_o your_o effectual_a call_v intend_v as_o seem_v that_o every_o one_o must_v have_v and_o find_v a_o particular_a time_n of_o god_n call_v he_o to_o a_o state_n of_o regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n this_o look_n to_o i_o like_o a_o intend_a distinguish_a character_n betwixt_o they_o who_o follow_v rational_a deduction_n from_o scripture_n and_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n and_o they_o must_v show_v we_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o mighty_a deed_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v they_o that_o they_o be_v so_o lead_v for_o if_o other_o man_n work_v and_o live_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o show_v as_o good_a fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o how_o can_v they_o be_v distinguish_v but_o by_o wonder_n and_o mighty_a deed_n say_v they_o by_o our_o special_a call_v regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n but_o how_o shall_v other_o know_v these_o to_o be_v good_a or_o better_a than_o ordinary_a but_o by_o their_o fruit_n or_o mighty_a deed_n if_o those_o deed_n or_o fruit_n extraordinary_a do_v not_o appear_v we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v they_o nor_o reason_n to_o approve_v they_o in_o pag._n 461._o he_o say_v let_v none_o be_v so_o fond_a to_o expect_v comfort_n in_o death_n until_o his_o soul_n have_v first_o comply_v with_o and_o obey_v the_o call_n of_o god_n in_o the_o time_n thereof_o pag._n 463._o say_v soul_n of_o man_n be_v as_o it_o be_v embark_v in_o the_o call_v of_o god_n and_o if_o they_o be_v lose_v your_o soul_n be_v lose_v i_o collect_v he_o intend_v let_v your_o faith_n and_o practice_n be_v what_o they_o will_v if_o you_o have_v not_o a_o call_v to_o the_o singular_a mode_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o obey_v that_o call_v your_o precious_a soul_n after_o all_o this_o will_v be_v lose_v he_o say_v before_o that_o when_o the_o enfranchise_a soul_n be_v upon_o its_o departure_n and_o sit_v upon_o the_o quiver_a lip_n of_o the_o die_a person_n neither_o able_a to_o stay_v in_o the_o body_n nor_o abide_v to_o forsake_v it_o the_o state_n of_o it_o be_v deplorable_a this_o show_v that_o he_o imagine_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o intelligent_a little_a thing_n parcel_n or_o spark_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o she_o be_v snatch_v or_o force_v away_o from_o the_o body_n nor_o what_o shall_v move_v she_o to_o forsake_v it_o or_o leave_v the_o be_v in_o it_o or_o near_o it_o against_o her_o will_n and_o yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o can_v have_v tell_v we_o that_o as_o well_o as_o the_o forego_n viz._n imaginando_fw-la if_o he_o have_v please_v and_o this_o call_v to_o mind_v a_o relation_n make_v to_o we_o by_o dr._n collins_n in_o his_o treatise_n concern_v russia_n there_o say_v he_o when_o a_o person_n draw_v on_o towards_o death_n they_o set_v a_o basin_n of_o fair_a water_n in_o the_o window_n and_o set_v the_o casement_n also_o open_a that_o the_o part_a soul_n may_v have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o bathe_v and_o refresh_v itself_o in_o the_o water_n and_o find_v a_o open_a passage_n out_o at_o the_o casement_n and_o not_o be_v enforce_v to_o the_o contrast_n of_o pass_v through_o cranny_n of_o the_o window_n or_o other_o place_n and_o thus_o i_o part_v with_o our_o author_n and_o finish_v my_o intend_a observation_n upon_o he_o i_o read_v in_o a_o noble_a author_n of_o our_o own_o nation_n that_o in_o all_o contest_v he_o who_o stand_v only_o upon_o his_o defence_n stand_v upon_o no_o defence_n seem_v want_v one_o main_a part_n of_o defence_n viz._n the_o disarm_v or_o weaken_v his_o opposer_n whereby_o his_o intend_a defence_n shall_v be_v make_v both_o more_o easy_a and_o effectual_a thus_o far_o in_o defend_v a_o tenet_n opposite_a to_o that_o of_o our_o author_n i_o have_v use_v only_o the_o buckler_n in_o shelter_n from_o the_o dint_n of_o his_o argument_n but_o that_o i_o may_v not_o forsake_v the_o benefit_n which_o may_v
final_a and_o hence_o it_o seem_v st._n peter_n believe_v they_o not_o nor_o like_v to_o build_v any_o thing_n upon_o they_o some_o have_v allege_v 1_o pet._n 3.19_o to_o prove_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n viz._n that_o christ_n be_v quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o also_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n etc._n etc._n concern_v this_o text_n i_o have_v say_v before_o that_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v it_o if_o i_o shall_v offer_v to_o prove_v by_o this_o text_n it_o will_v be_v to_o prove_v what_o i_o know_v not_o by_o what_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o what_o i_o will_v not_o offer_v i_o can_v agree_v to_o accept_v my_o desire_n be_v to_o have_v the_o immateriality_n or_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n prove_v by_o some_o text_n that_o i_o do_v understand_v and_o because_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v this_o text_n i_o refuse_v to_o accept_v it_o as_o a_o proof_n of_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o proceed_v to_o observe_v in_o the_o write_n of_o st._n john_n 1_o joh._n 2.28_o little_a child_n abide_v in_o he_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o may_v have_v confidence_n and_o not_o he_o ashamed_a before_o he_o at_o his_o come_n and_o chap._n 3.2_o belove_a now_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v both_o these_o text_n put_v all_o our_o expectation_n after_o death_n to_o the_o future_a appear_v or_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o still_o without_o notice_n of_o any_o state_n or_o thing_n intermediate_n between_o death_n and_o the_o resurrection_n judas_n ver._n 14._o behold_v the_o lord_n come_v with_o ten_o thousand_o of_o his_o saint_n to_o execute_v judgement_n upon_o all_o and_o to_o convince_v all_o that_o be_v ungodly_a among_o they_o of_o all_o their_o ungodly_a deed_n and_o speech_n speak_v against_o he_o refer_v all_o judgement_n future_a to_o life_n unto_o that_o of_o the_o great_a or_o last_o day_n as_o we_o have_v find_v it_o do_v before_o by_o all_o the_o apostle_n who_o write_n be_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n with_o a_o consent_n and_o agreement_n among_o they_o much_o above_o ordinary_a and_o which_o testify_v they_o be_v le●_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n promise_v to_o lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n we_o see_v this_o promise_n actual_o and_o complete_o fulfil_v in_o the_o text_n allege_v out_o of_o all_o their_o write_n and_o wherein_o they_o all_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n we_o now_o go_v on_o to_o the_o search_n of_o the_o four_o evangelist_n according_a to_o our_o lord_n direction_n search_v the_o scripture_n mat._n 13.36_o christ_n expound_v his_o parable_n of_o the_o tare_n he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o weed_v or_o root_v up_o in_o this_o world_n but_o suffer_v to_o grow_v here_o but_o ver._n 40._o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o angel_n shall_v gather_v they_o and_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o furnace_n of_o fire_n ver._n 43._o and_o then_o shall_v the_o righteous_a shine_n forth_o as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o their_o father_n without_o mention_n or_o notice_n of_o a_o intermediate_n judgement_n or_o state_n chap._n 19.28_o you_o who_o have_v follow_v i_o in_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v fit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n you_o shall_v sit_v on_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o every_o one_o who_o have_v suffer_v for_o my_o sake_n shall_v receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_v and_o shall_v inherit_v everlasting_a life_n observe_v peter_n ver._n 27._o have_v ask_v our_o lord_n what_o reward_n they_o who_o have_v forsake_v all_o for_o his_o sake_n shall_v have_v therefore_o christ_n give_v the_o abovesaid_a answer_n but_o if_o he_o have_v intend_v or_o know_v of_o a_o immediate_a go_v to_o heaven_n of_o soul_n upon_o death_n of_o party_n it_o seem_v that_o in_o this_o place_n he_o can_v not_o reasonable_o have_v omit_v the_o mention_n of_o it_o whence_o likely_a he_o neither_o intend_v it_o nor_o know_v of_o it_o chap._n 16.27_o the_o son_n of_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n the_o word_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v reward_v seem_v to_o import_v that_o this_o second_o come_v of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o only_o know_v time_n appoint_v for_o the_o distribution_n of_o recompense_n future_a to_o this_o life_n mark_v 8.38_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o my_o word_n of_o he_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n without_o notice_n take_v of_o any_o intermediate_n time_n or_o state_n luk._n 12.8_o he_o that_o confess_v i_o before_o man_n i_o will_v confess_v he_o before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o deny_v i_o before_o man_n shall_v be_v deny_v before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n chap._n 13.25_o when_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n have_v shut_v the_o door_n those_o knock_n without_o can_v come_v in_o but_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n shall_v go_v to_o the_o place_n of_o weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n this_o seem_v the_o effect_n of_o a_o general_n judgement_n chap._n 10.14_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o for_o you_o ver._n 12._o more_o tolerable_a in_o that_o day_n for_o sodom_n than_o for_o that_o city_n chap._n 14.14_o call_v to_o thy_o feast_n the_o poor_a lame_a and_o blind_a and_o thou_o shall_v be_v bless_v for_o they_o can_v recompense_v thou_o for_o thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrecteon_n of_o the_o just_a this_o seem_v plain_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v the_o time_n and_o even_o the_o only_a time_n for_o expectation_n of_o recompense_n and_o that_o deliver_v by_o our_o lord_n be_v own_o mouth_n the_o high_a authority_n that_o christian_n can_v expect_v or_o desire_v job_n 5.28_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o shad_v come_v forth_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n who_o shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n in_o the_o grave_n not_o the_o body_n or_o soul_n but_o the_o dead_a person_n and_o they_o shall_v come_v forth_o at_o that_o time_n only_o and_o be_v doom_v and_o judge_v to_o life_n or_o damnation_n chap._n 6.39_o my_o father_n will_n be_v that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o but_o shall_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver._n 40._o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver._n 44._o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n ver._n 54._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n in_o the_o 2d_o &_o 3d._n of_o the_o revelation_n there_o be_v a_o great_a variety_n of_o reward_n promise_v to_o he_o that_o overcome_v but_o here_o the_o only_a reward_n in_o our_o four_o place_n be_v to_o be_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o life_n everlasting_a as_o a_o abundant_a recompense_n for_o all_o faith_n performance_n and_o suffering_n and_o show_v that_o to_o be_v the_o only_a time_n future_a to_o this_o world_n when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v warrantable_o and_o upon_o good_a ground_n expect_v and_o hope_v for_o by_o all_o true_a believer_n chap._n 12.48_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v the_o same_o shall_v judge_v a_o man_n at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o mat._n 12.36_o of_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o man_n shall_v speak_v they_o shall_v give_v account_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n if_o they_o have_v give_v such_o a_o account_n of_o a_o particular_a judgement_n soon_o after_o death_n what_o need_n can_v there_o be_v of_o bring_v idle_a word_n to_o account_v over_o again_o at_o the_o general_n judgement_n there_o seem_v no_o probability_n in_o it_o chap._n 14.1_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n and_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o if_o i_o go_v and_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o unto_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o you_o may_v be_v also_o this_o show_v when_o
than_o free_o and_o fair_o flow_v from_o the_o word_n and_o intent_n of_o these_o scripture_n well_o but_o still_o there_o be_v four_o text_n not_o instance_a in_o and_o which_o seem_v to_o make_v appear_v a_o intent_n to_o teach_v this_o doctrine_n concern_v they_o i_o say_v that_o mat._n 10._o &_o phil._n 1._o show_v not_o a_o principal_a intent_n so_o to_o teach_v that_o of_o mat._n teach_v principal_o to_o fear_n god_n more_o than_o man_n the_o philip._n intend_v principal_o to_o show_v that_o paul_n will_v have_v christ_n magnify_v by_o his_o life_n or_o by_o his_o death_n and_o that_o it_o be_v indifferent_a to_o he_o by_o whether_o of_o these_o mean_v that_o end_n shall_v be_v attain_v by_o death_n will_v be_v easy_a and_o a_o more_o gain_n to_o he_o but_o by_o life_n he_o think_v may_v be_v more_o profitable_a and_o beneficial_a to_o they_o and_o the_o church_n this_o seem_v the_o principal_a intent_n and_o scope_n of_o this_o text_n and_o not_o to_o teach_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n or_o immateriality_n of_o soul_n mat._n 16._o about_o gain_v the_o world_n and_o lose_v the_o soul_n seem_v to_o show_v a_o intent_n of_o teach_v concern_v soul_n and_o the_o hinge_v of_o its_o mean_v turn_v upon_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n soul_n in_o this_o place_n our_o lord_n previous_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n to_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n and_o follow_v he_o expect_v tribulation_n in_o his_o doctrine_n for_o whosoever_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o whosoever_o will_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n my_o sense_n of_o this_o text_n be_v that_o the_o word_n soul_n and_o life_n be_v consignificant_a as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v he_o that_o save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o lose_v it_o shall_v find_v it_o for_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o life_n or_o what_o can_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o life_n if_o one_o lose_v his_o life_n the_o gain_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n can_v do_v he_o no_o good_a nor_o make_v he_o a_o recompense_n for_o it_o and_o the_o devil_n can_v say_v all_z that_o a_o man_n have_v will_v he_o give_v for_o his_o life_n nor_o will_v any_o man_n of_o sense_n take_v the_o world_n in_o exchange_n for_o his_o life_n for_o that_o the_o world_n be_v of_o no_o use_n or_o value_v to_o the_o dead_a so_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o text_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o word_n or_o term_n which_o i_o have_v before_o plentiful_o prove_v to_o signify_v and_o intend_v very_o often_o the_o person_n the_o affection_n the_o intellect_n and_o the_o life_n and_o i_o take_v it_o here_o to_o intend_v the_o life_n of_o the_o person_n and_o not_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o forma_fw-la informans_fw-la of_o the_o man._n to_o the_o parable_n of_o dives_n luk._n 16._o i_o have_v full_o speak_v and_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o parable_n not_o explain_v or_o expound_v by_o our_o lord_n that_o we_o know_v of_o i_o take_v it_o speak_v in_o illustration_n of_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n deliver_v but_o three_o verse_n before_o viz._n that_o which_o be_v high_o esteem_v among_o man_n be_v abomination_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o be_v very_o proper_a for_o that_o purpose_n and_o that_o the_o discourse_v hold_v in_o it_o between_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n be_v suit_v to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o people_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v and_o do_v not_o intend_v a_o true_a relation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n i_o conceive_v the_o text_n 10._o mat._n and_o this_o parable_n to_o be_v like_o the_o two_o pillar_n of_o dagon_n house_n the_o main_a prop_n of_o the_o immaterial_a opinion_n upon_o which_o the_o whole_a weight_n of_o it_o lean_v prop_v also_o by_o the_o other_o text_n before_o rehearse_v but_o weak_o and_o i_o leave_v the_o consideration_n to_o such_o as_o shall_v happen_v to_o peruse_v what_o have_v here_o be_v collect_v and_o put_v together_o intend_v single_o the_o search_n and_o manifestation_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n our_o author_n flavel_n lay_v the_o foundation_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n upon_o moses_n his_o text_n quote_v pag._n 1._o of_o his_o book_n viz._n gen._n 2.7_o god_n form_v man_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o breathe_v into_o his_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o man_n become_v a_o live_v soul_n and_o the_o word_n of_o this_o text_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o interpret_v and_o by_o his_o so_o do_v verefy_v the_o old_a say_v mala_fw-la interpretatio_fw-la corrumpit_fw-la textum_fw-la for_o thus_o he_o interpret_v this_o text_n say_v he_o prove_v and_o intend_v that_o god_n do_v then_o create_v a_o spirit_n or_o soul_n out_o of_o nothing_o for_o man_n viz._n a_o immaterial_a intelligent_a substance_n or_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v either_o first_o create_v and_o then_o infuse_v or_o infundendo_fw-la be_v create_v in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o infusion_n i_o will_v raise_v no_o dispute_n with_o he_o about_o the_o mode_n or_o manner_n of_o his_o intend_a creation_n be_v it_o create_v and_o infuse_v or_o infundendo_fw-la create_v but_o i_o say_v that_o either_o way_n take_v it_o be_v not_o warrant_v by_o the_o letter_n or_o word_n of_o the_o text_n for_o therein_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o spirit_n or_o creation_n out_o of_o nothing_o or_o any_o sort_n of_o creation_n whatsoever_o so_o his_o interpretation_n be_v not_o warrant_v by_o the_o word_n or_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n and_o that_o it_o be_v more_o oppose_v by_o the_o sense_n and_o mean_v of_o the_o text_n than_o it_o be_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o it_o for_o if_o the_o text_n or_o moses_n have_v intend_v or_o mean_v that_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n breathe_v into_o adam_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o such_o a_o spirit_n it_o will_v have_v be_v more_o plain_o express_v in_o the_o text_n or_o at_o least_o the_o propriety_n of_o speak_v will_v have_v require_v to_o have_v have_v it_o express_v after_o another_o manner_n viz._n god_n breathe_v into_o adam_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o it_o or_o that_o viz._n that_o breath_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n but_o the_o text_n be_v otherwise_o word_v it_o neither_o say_v nor_o intend_v that_o the_o breath_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n but_o that_o the_o man_n do_v so_o and_o i_o say_v far_o that_o by_o the_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n be_v not_o intend_v that_o he_o become_v a_o soul_n mere_o or_o single_o call_v by_o aristotle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o expound_v by_o actus_fw-la primus_fw-la corporis_fw-la organici_fw-la not_o such_o a_o bare_a soul_n without_o a_o body_n a_o thing_n never_o yet_o know_v in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la but_o a_o live_a soul_n in_o composito_n viz._n a_o live_a person_n man_n become_v a_o live_a person_n heb._n 10.39_o we_o be_v of_o they_o that_o believe_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n viz._n of_o the_o person_n for_o all_o agree_v the_o body_n shall_v have_v a_o salvation_n as_o well_o as_o he_o soul_n i_o perceive_v that_o the_o term_n of_o soul_n very_o oft_o in_o scripture_n intend_v to_o signify_v the_o person_n be_v a_o great_a occasion_n of_o mislead_v the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o reader_n induce_v they_o to_o apply_v to_o the_o single_a and_o bare_a soul_n those_o say_n which_o be_v intend_v of_o or_o for_o the_o person_n so_o be_v the_o case_n now_o cite_v heb._n 10._o and_o so_o in_o our_o text_n now_o examine_v and_o because_o the_o correct_a and_o emendation_n of_o this_o mistake_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o very_o great_a importance_n i_o have_v before_o give_v many_o instance_n of_o the_o usage_n in_o scripture_n expression_n in_o a_o multitude_n of_o place_n and_o yet_o not_o in_o half_a of_o those_o that_o i_o may_v have_v do_v and_o because_o this_o truth_n can_v be_v make_v too_o apparent_a and_o with_o great_a difficulty_n plain_a enough_o i_o will_v touch_v a_o few_o instance_n of_o it_o again_o in_o this_o place_n gen_n 46.26_o all_o the_o soul_n that_o come_v out_o of_o jacob_n loin_n into_o egypt_n be_v 66_o and_o joseph_n son_n be_v two_o soul_n so_o all_o the_o soul_n of_o jacob_n house_n be_v 70_o count_v jacob_n and_o joseph_n here_o soul_n can_v intend_v nothing_o but_o person_n act_n 27.37_o in_o paul_n voyage_n towards_o rome_n and_o shipwreck_n at_o malta_n there_o be_v in_o all_o in_o the_o ship_n 276_o soul_n viz._n person_n isa_n
calamos_fw-la cera_fw-la conjungere_fw-la plures_fw-la instituit_fw-la last_o i_o have_v choose_v the_o organ_n as_o that_o instrument_n whereunto_o mankind_n may_v most_o suitable_o be_v compare_v and_o from_o hence_o shall_v begin_v to_o make_v general_a observation_n upon_o these_o instrument_n and_o creature_n comparando_fw-la as_o the_o whistle_n and_o horn_n have_v no_o great_a variety_n in_o their_o sound_n so_o have_v the_o infect_v but_o something_o analogous_a in_o they_o to_o they_o to_o flame_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o may_v rather_o be_v count_v animata_fw-la than_o animalie_n and_o we_o shall_v but_o little_o insist_v upon_o they_o but_o choose_v to_o observe_v rather_o upon_o our_o three_o instrument_n the_o penny_n pipe_n which_o can_v make_v a_o variety_n of_o sound_n by_o several_a stop_v upon_o it_o first_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o as_o all_o our_o other_o instrument_n this_o and_o they_o all_o be_v act_v and_o make_v sound_v by_o one_o same_o actor_n or_o principle_n viz._n breath_n or_o wind_n inspire_v they_o and_o i_o say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o small_a animal_n compare_v to_o it_o viz._n mice_n mole_n etc._n etc._n we_o say_v that_o they_o as_o all_o other_o animal_n be_v frame_v and_o act_v after_o a_o similar_v manner_n and_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o great_a animal_n be_v and_z as_o man_n their_o supreme_a also_o be_v for_o each_o of_o these_o small_a animal_n have_v skin_n bone_n flesh_n blood_n sinew_n nerve_n muscle_n joint_n heart_n brain_n and_o breath_n as_o well_o as_o the_o horse_n or_o the_o elephant_n or_o even_o as_o man_n himself_o and_o act_v their_o five_o sense_n and_o vital_a faculty_n as_o other_o animal_n do_v and_o have_v a_o flame_n of_o life_n or_o glow_v in_o their_o flood_n which_o make_v it_o circulate_a active_a and_o move_a as_o be_v do_v in_o other_o more_o large_a and_o potent_a animal_n in_o a_o proportion_n and_o nature_n suitable_a to_o their_o being_n the_o thing_n be_v all_o of_o a_o hind_n in_o they_o all_o as_o the_o wind_n and_o breath_n in_o the_o musical_a instrument_n the_o wind_n in_o they_o do_v not_o make_v a_o like_a sound_n or_o music_n in_o they_o all_o but_o according_a to_o the_o structure_n and_o capacity_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o now_o give_v a_o penny_n pipe_n into_o the_o best_a artist_n hand_n and_o who_o have_v a_o very_a good_a breath_n yet_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o make_v but_o very_o mean_a music_n with_o it_o suitable_a to_o the_o mean_a capacity_n of_o the_o instrument_n and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o mouse_n or_o the_o mole_n among_o animal_n though_o they_o in_o their_o structure_n part_n and_o spirit_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o great_a animal_n yet_o such_o spirit_n and_o flame_n can_v do_v no_o more_o in_o those_o small_a and_o weak_a body_n than_o the_o capacity_n and_o organ_n of_o they_o will_v extend_v unto_o and_o those_o degree_n of_o power_n proportionate_a to_o its_o own_o strength_n nature_n and_o constitution_n and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o every_o degree_n of_o animal_n one_o above_o another_o the_o flame_n or_o material_a spirit_n of_o life_n work_v in_o each_o of_o they_o proportionable_o to_o act_v and_o perform_v such_o thing_n and_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o the_o structure_n of_o their_o body_n and_o the_o figure_n power_n and_o order_n of_o their_o member_n make_v they_o able_a and_o inclinable_a to_o act_v and_o give_v they_o a_o power_n to_o execute_v and_o just_o as_o in_o the_o wind_n instrument_n one_o sort_n of_o spirit_n act_v they_o all_o and_o one_o sort_n of_o material_n viz_o hard_a material_n wood_n or_o methal_n make_v the_o body_n or_o gross_a and_o palpable_a part_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v that_o vast_a variety_n in_o the_o music_n and_o sound_n of_o they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o of_o kin_n one_o of_o they_o to_o the_o other_o but_o rather_o as_o if_o they_o be_v quite_o different_a thing_n in_o their_o nature_n which_o plain_o they_o be_v not_o for_o the_o matter_n and_o spirit_n in_o they_o all_o be_v alike_o it_o be_v true_a they_o be_v different_a instrument_n and_o make_v very_o different_a sound_n and_o sort_v of_o music_n and_o it_o seem_v the_o case_n be_v the_o same_o among_o animal_n matter_n and_o spirit_n be_v of_o like_a nature_n in_o they_o all_o man_n himself_o though_o sanctius_n his_o animal_n mentisque_fw-la capacius_fw-la altae_fw-la his_fw-la genus_fw-la be_v the_o same_o with_o they_o he_o be_v animal_n let_v the_o differentia_fw-la be_v what_o it_o will_v rationale_n or_o religiosum_fw-la man_n be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a with_o the_o other_o animal_n and_o be_v compare_v by_o david_n to_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v utter_o and_o so_o shall_v man_n have_v do_v unless_o god_n have_v promise_v and_o appoint_v a_o resurrection_n for_o he_o and_o a_o judgement_n upon_o he_o but_o all_o our_o maintainer_n of_o the_o immateriality_n exclaim_v and_o declaim_v upon_o the_o transcendent_a advantage_n which_o man_n have_v over_o and_o beyond_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o power_n and_o activity_n of_o their_o rational_a faculty_n which_o mistake_o and_o yet_o general_o they_o call_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o seem_v so_o to_o esteem_v and_o think_v of_o it_o but_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v not_o a_o great_a difference_n in_o nature_n or_o power_n betwixt_o man_n and_o beast_n then_o in_o music_n there_o be_v between_o the_o organ_n and_o the_o inferior_a instrument_n from_o the_o trumpet_n to_o the_o penny_n pipe_n or_o whistle_n there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o transcendency_n in_o the_o organ_n over_o or_o and_o above_o each_o of_o the_o other_o instrument_n in_o the_o musical_a use_n of_o they_o as_o there_o be_v in_o man_n over_o and_o above_o beast_n in_o the_o several_a kind_n of_o they_o these_o machine_n viz._n the_o organ_n and_o the_o man_n the_o one_o among_o wind_n instrument_n and_o the_o other_o among_o animal_n must_v evident_o be_v account_v for_o superlative_a and_o supreme_a with_o who_o none_o of_o the_o inferior_a animal_n or_o instrument_n can_v hold_v a_o reasonable_a comparison_n but_o ocular_o visible_a it_o be_v that_o the_o organ_n have_v no_o other_o spirit_n or_o cause_n of_o its_o sound_n music_n and_o harmony_n but_o the_o same_o that_o act_n in_o all_o the_o inferior_a instrument_n and_o semblable_o it_o seem_v that_o although_o man_n be_v a_o superlative_a and_o supreme_a animal_n yet_o he_o may_v be_v and_o be_v act_v by_o a_o like_a flame_n or_o spirit_n as_o we_o agree_v do_v actuate_v and_o enliven_v the_o other_o animal_n of_o a_o inferior_a nature_n or_o degree_n enable_v for_o act_n of_o life_n and_o vegetation_n nourishment_n digestion_n and_o generation_n stir_v their_o affection_n of_o lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v move_a and_o act_v their_o five_o sense_n to_o perceive_v their_o several_a object_n and_o all_o these_o and_o their_o local_a motion_n be_v as_o vigorous_a and_o perfect_o act_v in_o beast_n as_o in_o man_n and_o this_o sort_n of_o soul_n act_v also_o in_o brutus_n a_o understanding_n fancy_n judgement_n and_o memory_n true_a in_o their_o kind_a but_o to_o a_o very_a low_a degree_n in_o comparison_n with_o faculty_n of_o those_o kind_n find_v among_o man_n for_o that_o the_o humane_a head_n and_o organ_n there_o place_v be_v far_o more_o advantageous_o frame_v and_o fit_v for_o such_o purpose_n and_o thus_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v set_v forth_o and_o show_v a_o apparent_a and_o pregnant_a likeness_n or_o similitude_n between_o the_o correspondence_n which_o the_o organ_n have_v with_o the_o inferior_a wind_n instrument_n and_o that_o which_o man_n have_v with_o the_o inferior_a animal_n and_o that_o this_o comparison_n or_o similitude_n may_v be_v helpful_o use_v towards_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o operation_n of_o a_o humane_a soul_n and_o some_o far_a assimilation_n may_v be_v make_v of_o man_n to_o a_o organ_n viz._n first_o that_o as_o in_o a_o organ_n the_o wind_n can_v command_v or_o alter_v the_o sound_n of_o any_o of_o the_o pipe_n so_o as_o to_o make_v the_o treble_a mean_a tenor_n or_o base_n sound_v otherwise_o than_o that_o artist_n who_o make_v they_o intend_v they_o for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o man_n his_o spirit_n or_o soul_n can_v act_v any_o of_o his_o sense_n or_o faculty_n to_o other_o than_o those_o very_a purpose_n for_o which_o the_o divine_a artificer_n make_v and_o intend_v they_o it_o can_v make_v the_o hand_n see_v nor_o the_o foot_n hear_v the_o shoulder_n understand_v nor_o the_o buttock_n digest_v but_o it_o can_v only_o act_v every_o part_n member_n and_o organ_n to_o those_o purpose_n intend_v by_o he_o that_o make_v they_o second_o as_o when_o any_o of_o the_o pipe_n in_o a_o organ_n be_v ill_o make_v crack_v or_o otherwise_o harm_v the_o wind_n can_v
not_o produce_v it_o and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v for_o the_o form_n viz._n the_o soul_n the_o parent_n give_v it_o but_o they_o do_v not_o produce_v it_o this_o answer_n seem_v clear_o concessive_a that_o the_o parent_n generate_v the_o soul_n as_o much_o and_o as_o effectual_o as_o they_o do_v the_o body_n and_o more_o than_o that_o be_v not_o require_v by_o sennertus_n or_o any_o other_o but_o our_o friend_n insist_o learn_v say_v he_o the_o effect_n of_o generation_n from_o those_o of_o our_o dissolution_n our_o death_n do_v dissolve_v the_o union_n of_o our_o part_n but_o it_o do_v not_o destroy_v those_o part_n but_o only_o the_o man_n whence_o as_o by_o generation_n we_o become_v man_n by_o die_v we_o cease_v to_o be_v so_o this_o also_o grant_v that_o all_o which_o perish_v in_o death_n be_v generate_v by_o the_o parent_n the_o body_n have_v a_o time_n to_o get_v life_n and_o grow_v and_o so_o it_o have_v to_o putrify_v and_o consume_v and_o the_o soul_n begin_v with_o life_n in_o the_o embryo_n and_o in_o the_o body_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o extinguish_v in_o death_n of_o the_o body_n natural_o or_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v yet_o scientifical_o instruct_v from_o reason_n or_o nature_n what_o it_o be_v and_o where_o it_o be_v or_o at_o least_o that_o it_o be_v and_o have_v a_o separate_a state_n and_o subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o p._n 43._o he_o recite_v another_o argument_n of_o sennertus_n viz._n if_o the_o seed_n be_v not_o animate_v from_o the_o first_o instant_a and_o then_o the_o progenitor_n happen_v to_o die_v before_o the_o time_n of_o animation_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o a_o dead_a man_n do_v genenerate_a he_o answer_v this_o case_n be_v like_o one_o who_o put_v spark_n of_o fire_n among_o fuel_n then_o leave_v it_o and_o the_o fire_n do_v not_o take_v hold_n and_o burn_v till_o a_o good_a while_n after_o yet_o this_o man_n be_v say_v to_o have_v make_v the_o fire_n and_o we_o do_v agree_v the_o similitude_n to_o be_v apt_a enough_o in_o this_o case_n and_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o import_v the_o seed_n be_v as_o much_o the_o efficient_a of_o the_o whole_a child_n as_o the_o spark_n put_v into_o the_o fuel_n be_v of_o the_o fire_n more_o than_o which_o have_v not_o be_v demand_v our_o friend_n say_v he_o have_v choose_v to_o contest_v this_o point_n against_o sennertus_n because_o that_o doctor_n be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a worth_n and_o substance_n and_o say_v he_o magnify_v his_o wisdom_n great_o in_o submit_v his_o opinion_n to_o the_o divine_n worthy_a to_o be_v imitate_v herein_o by_o all_o other_o man_n but_o that_o before_o have_v be_v deliver_v do_v sufficient_o evince_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a latitude_n and_o difference_n of_o opinion_n in_o the_o world_n concern_v this_o writer_n of_o an._n 1645._o we_o may_v observe_v he_o have_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o wren_n in_o the_o fable_n who_o sit_v upon_o the_o back_n of_o the_o eagle_n and_o be_v carry_v by_o she_o into_o the_o cloud_n and_o come_v to_o the_o full_a extent_n of_o the_o eagle_n height_n she_o put_v herself_o to_o the_o small_a stretch_n of_o she_o own_o wing_n and_o mount_v above_o the_o eagle_n by_o so_o much_o he_o have_v perceive_v the_o great_a incongruity_n of_o continual_o new_o create_v soul_n and_o intend_v at_o mollify_a they_o by_o assign_v they_o a_o regular_a ordination_n as_o a_o duty_n upon_o the_o exigence_n of_o nature_n this_o course_n appear_v heal_a and_o helpful_a posito_fw-la that_o the_o soul_n be_v immaterial_a but_o it_o be_v no_o manner_n of_o proof_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v so_o and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o only_o a_o material_a spirit_n then_o be_v there_o no_o need_n of_o this_o invention_n and_o than_o it_o be_v as_o have_v be_v say_v not_o only_o a_o invention_n but_o a_o needless_a one_o and_o yet_o it_o testify_v the_o writer_n among_o his_o other_o endeavour_n to_o have_v be_v a_o person_n of_o wit_n learning_n and_o consideration_n all_o the_o author_n present_o in_o our_o possession_n or_o reach_v concern_v the_o soul_n have_v before_o be_v cite_v and_o consider_v viz._n four_o foreign_n and_o four_o of_o our_o own_o late_a and_o domestic_a writer_n and_o concern_v the_o materiality_n or_o immateriality_n of_o humane_a soul_n we_o may_v observe_v from_o that_o they_o have_v speak_v that_o there_o be_v two_o particular_a query_n or_o question_n the_o determination_n of_o which_o will_v advance_v much_o towards_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o soul_n nature_n and_o qualification_n if_o one_o of_o they_o be_v prove_v or_o grant_v thence_o the_o immateriality_n of_o the_o soul_n may_v be_v strong_o infer_v and_o if_o the_o other_o be_v prove_v or_o grant_v thence_o may_v he_o as_o strong_o infer_v the_o soul_n materiality_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o affirmative_a by_o divers_a of_o our_o author_n viz._n more_n digby_n zanchius_n and_o the_o pamphlet_n of_o 1645_o who_o do_v all_o express_o and_o often_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n in_o life-time_n of_o the_o man_n do_v at_o some_o time_n and_o in_o some_o case_n act_n of_o and_o by_o herself_o without_o aid_n or_o ministry_n of_o the_o body_n or_o its_o organ_n or_o any_o member_n or_o power_n of_o it_o if_o this_o assertion_n have_v be_v prove_v or_o can_v or_o shall_v be_v prove_v we_o grant_v from_o the_o conclusion_n a_o very_a strong_a inference_n may_v be_v draw_v for_o the_o soul_n immateriality_n agree_v the_o truth_n of_o aristotle_n assertion_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o soul_n chap._n 1._o that_o if_o the_o soul_n have_v any_o operation_n or_o affection_n peculiar_a to_o herself_o and_o wherein_o she_o can_v effectual_o act_n without_o use_n or_o aid_n of_o the_o body_n or_o the_o member_n organ_n or_o spirit_n of_o it_o than_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o she_o may_v also_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n but_o say_v he_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o and_o man_n fail_v in_o proof_n of_o such_o a_o peculiar_a in_o the_o soul_n certain_o she_o can_v subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n our_o author_n for_o proof_n of_o such_o a_o peculiar_a in_o the_o soul_n do_v allege_v that_o the_o soul_n can_v conceive_v spiritual_a being_n and_n universals_z second_o or_o abstract_a notion_n logical_a mathematical_a and_o metaphysical_a being_n and_o thing_n which_o matter_n be_v not_o very_o capable_a of_o nor_o that_o it_o can_v be_v assistant_n to_o the_o formation_n or_o contemplation_n of_o such_o conception_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o may_v be_v oppose_v the_o same_o author_n assertion_n that_o whilst_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o the_o body_n she_o can_v act_v without_o the_o animal_n or_o vital_a spirit_n of_o the_o body_n and_o before_o have_v be_v observe_v that_o the_o soul_n can_v see_v but_o by_o the_o eye_n nor_o remember_v but_o in_o the_o memory_n and_o these_o organ_n and_o faculty_n may_v be_v lose_v by_o accident_n and_o yet_o the_o soul_n remain_v perfect_a still_o but_o without_o sight_n or_o memory_n for_o want_v of_o the_o bodily_a organ_n and_o if_o the_o intellect_n be_v craze_v the_o soul_n can_v understand_v but_o according_a to_o such_o capacity_n as_o remain_v in_o the_o organ_n and_o it_o seem_v the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v for_o all_o other_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n which_o infer_v the_o soul_n can_v operate_v without_o the_o spirit_n and_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n as_o to_o the_o conceive_v spiritual_a being_n and_n thing_n it_o have_v be_v say_v such_o knowledge_n have_v be_v derive_v from_o revelation_n make_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o some_o man_n and_o their_o testimony_n of_o they_o to_o other_o man_n and_o for_o the_o conception_n of_o universals_z and_o abstract_a notion_n it_o seem_v the_o soul_n in_o the_o intellect_n work_v comparate_a and_o abstractive_a by_o use_v the_o joint_a power_n of_o intellect_n fantasy_n and_o memory_n and_o by_o compose_v and_o compare_v what_o be_v find_v in_o they_o may_v well_o enough_o be_v able_a by_o abstract_v they_o from_o conception_n of_o matter_n and_o sense_n and_o sort_v they_o first_o then_o rank_v and_o compare_v they_o the_o soul_n by_o joint_n use_v of_o these_o organ_n may_v natural_o be_v able_a to_o raise_v general_n out_o of_o particular_n and_o from_o general_n ascend_v to_o universals_z and_o so_o likewise_o raise_v abstract_v notion_n from_o the_o often_o repetition_n and_o compare_v thing_n first_o make_v know_v to_o they_o by_o the_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o then_o agree_v that_o any_o of_o our_o author_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o soul_n have_v any_o operation_n or_o affection_n so_o peculiar_a to_o herself_o as_o that_o the_o body_n